311 83 10MB
English Pages [184]
r> THE ry
blKHO HISTOR Y, RELIGION, AND SOCIETY W. H.
McLEOD
I
SOUTH SAN FRANCISCO PUBLIC LIBRARY
The sial
Sikhs, a colorful and controver-
people about
erally
whom little is gen-
known,
subject of ulation.
have
much
been
the
hypothetical spec-
non-conformist
Their except
— to their own traditions— and their fierce independence — even demanding to autonomy — have recently attracted
behavior
world-wide attention. internationally
Hew
known
McLeod,
scholar of
Sikh studies, provides a just and accurate description in his introduction to this religious
community
from northern India now numbering about
sixteen
million
people,
exploring their history, doctrine,
and
literature.
The Sikhs begins by
giving an
overview of the people's history, then covers the origins of the Sikh tradition, dwelling on controversies surrounding the life and doctrine of the
first
Guru
Master,
Nanak
The book surveys the subsequent life of the community
(1469-1539).
with emphasis on the founding
of
the Khalsa, the order that gives to Sikhs the insignia by which they are best known. The remaining sections concern Sikh doctrine, the problem of who should be regarded as a Sikh, and a survey of Sikh literature. Finally, the book considers the present life of the community its dispersion around the world to Asia, Australasia, North America, Africa, and Europe, and its irtvolvement in the current trials of r v Fynjab.
—
;
{Continued on back flap)
so.
S.F.
PUBLIC LIBRARY
WEST ORANGE AVENUE
3
-i-
SO.
S.F.
PUBLIC LlSRARV
WEST ORANGE AVENUE
AUG
1989
Digitized by the Internet Archive in
2017 with funding from
Kahle/Austin Foundation
https://archive.org/details/sikhshistoryreliOOmcle
THE SIKHS
LECTURES ON THE HISTORY OE REEKilON Sponsored by the American Council of Learned Societies Seiv Series
Number
so.
S.F.
14
PUBLIC LIBRARY
WEST ORANGE AVENUE
3
I
V
"
j jijo.
1
THE
SIKHS HISTORY, RELIGION, AND SOCIETY
W.
C
()
L U
McLeod
H.
M
B
1
A
L
N
I
N ew
K R S
\ ^
()
r
k
I
I
^
R R K S S
COIXMhIA UM\ KRSITY PRKSS NKW VOKK (Copyright
©
(JLILDFOKI),
SLRKKV
1989 C^okimbia University Press All rights reserved
LIBRAin OF CONGRESS C A'F ALO( ilN(CIN-PL BLJC A FION DA FA
McLeod, I
he Sikhs
:
W
.
H.
history, religion,
(Lectures on the history of religions
and society.
new
;
ser., no.
14)
Bibliography: p. Includes index. 1.
Sikhs
— History.
1)S485.P3M39
2.
1989
Sikhism.
1.
Title.
909'. 0882946
11.
Series.
88-2.5620
ISBN 0-231-06814-X Book
Desigti by
Jaya Dayal
Printed in the United States of .\merica
(>asebound editions of Columbia University Press books are
Smyth-sew n and printed on permanent and durable
acid-free paper
TX
ms
on the
I
volume
is
the tourteenth to be published in the series ot Lectures
bstor\’ of Religions for
Societies,
through
its
w hich the American
(Council of Learned
(>ommittee on the History of Religions, assumed
re-
sponsibility in 1936.
Under
the program the (>)mmittee from time to time enlists the services
of scholars to lecture in colleges, universities, and seminaries on topics in
need of expert elucidation. Subsequently, when possible and appropriate, the (Committee arranges for the publication of the lectures. (Jther volumes
Martin
in the series are
R.
Nilsson, (Week Popular Religum (1940), Henri
Frankfort, Ancient Egyptian Religion (1948), W’ingtsit (^han. Religious Trends
Modern China (1953), Joachim W’ach, Ibe Comparative Study of Religions^ edited bv Joseph .\L Kitagawa (1958), R. .\L (irant, Cnosticism and Early in
Christianity (1959),
Robert Lawson Slater, World Religions and World ComKitagawa, Religion
munity (1963), Joseph
.\1.
Joseph L. Blau, Modern
Varieties ofJudaism (1966),
Parties
and
Politics
That Shaped the
Modern Trends
in
and Pilgrimage
in Christian
in
Japanese History (1966),
Morton Smith, Palestinian Old Testament (1971), Philip H. .Kshbv,
Hinduism (1974), \
ictor
Furner and Fdith Turner, Image
Culture (1978), .\nnemarie Schimmel,
a Veil: Mystical Poetry in Islam (1982), and Peter
Men, Women, and Sexual Renunciation
in
As Through
Brown, The Body and
Early Christianity (1988).
Society:
V
1
CONTENTS 1
The Sikhs /
2
The Origins of the Sikh Tradition 16
3
Four (>enturics of Sikh Historv 32 4
Sikh Doctrine
4S
3
W ho
Is a
Sikh?
60 6
The Literature of the Sikhs 82 7
Sikhs
in the
Modern 102
V
1
W orld
Note on Sources 121
Notes 122
Cilossarv
141
Select Bibliography
147
Index 152
V til
^
A CKNO WLEDGMENTS fl\’F. of these chapters were lectures prepared under the auspices of the American (Council of Learned Societies, d o the committee responsible for the invitation
I
express
my
grateful thanks for the
honor
w hich they did me. In particular w ish to thank Professor W illard G. Oxtobv for his interest and continuing support. Lo these five have been added the essays which appear as chapters gave at various places is a general lecture w hich and 4. (diapter in North America in 1986, slightly amended to bring it up to date. It w as originally puldished in the Harcard D'rcinity Bulletui January-May I
I
1
1
(
1987) and
1
express
mv
mission to reproduce
it
thanks to
its
editor, J.
here, (diapter 4
lengthier form in Joseph 1. O’Connell, cds., Sikh History I
am
grateful to
and Religion
mv
is
M.
a
Michael
W est,
tor per-
paper which appears
Israel,
and
W
.
(L Oxtobv,
in the 'Isssentieth (Century (d'oronto,
co-editors for permission to reprint
Lor their help on February
2,
1987, Ainslie
in a
1988).
it.
Kmbree, Mark juer-
gcnsmever, and jack I law lev earned gratitude I am unable to repay. also acknowledge with profound thankfulness debts w hich I owe to Maureen (Rafferty, j. P. Mohr, and W illiam W (d)rrell. Fo the many friends who helped mv wife and me during our year Punjabis, (Cain Toronto and in our travels around North America I
.
nadians, and others south of the border Finally,
I
am
—
—
I
express
my w armest
thanks.
eternally grateful to Margaret for her never-failing love
and support.
/.V
V
/
THE SIKHS
V
1
The
N'KK^'ONK,
it
Sikhs
seems, knows hou to recognize a Sikh (or
at least a
Sikh man) and most people seem to have some notion of the general outlook and behavior to be expeeted of them.
If a
description of a Sikh
on beards, turbans and possibly swords; a description of Sikh attitudes and behavior will probably have something to sav about militant ideals and a willingness to perform violent deeds. And do thev not w ant their own independent state in India.^ At this point the description begins to falter. We seem to have summarized evervthing that most people know about Sikhs. d'hose who know the truth of the matter may well be offended by is
called for
it
will invariably focus
an introduction of this kind, believing that it can only serve to reinforce a most unfortunate and misleading stereotype. .Many Sikh men do in-
deed wear beard and turban, but not all observe these conventions. Swords are seldom carried and acts of violence are confined to a very small minoritv; there is indeed a tradition of militancy w ithin the Sikh communitv, but it is one which for loyal Sikhs is strictly controlled and legitimate! v expressed onlv under the most extreme circumstances. Just
/
77//:
how
iiianv Sikhs support the
l)atal)le to
W hat
sav the
we
really
demand
for
an independent state
is
de-
least.
need
new and fairer stereotype. A just and aeSikh community w ill certainly stress the coma
is
eurate deseription of the
mon
SIK/IS
outward identity, but it will add that this convention is not practiced by all w ho call themselves Sikhs. It w ill recognize the presence of v iolence, but it will insist on limiting this feature to a tiny minority and it w ill maintain that Sikhs are no worse than other eommunities in this regard. It vv ill also emphasize positiv e features which all too often are overlooked. The usual way of correcting false impressions concerning the Sikhs is to offer a survey of the community’s history. It is a sound method and it is the one which is adopted here, starting vv ith the establishment of the community five hundred years ago. The account begins with (luru Nanak, born into a Punjabi Hindu obseryance of
family in 1469. traditional
I
a distinctixe
he
narratives
of
life
\anak
described with loving detail in
janam-sakhis),
(the
us; they offer a hagiographie
Nanak’s
is
later followers rather
but these need not detain
treatment w hich belongs to the piety of than to the reality of his actual
life.
Al-
though they certainly exercise a considerable intluence on Sikh perceptions of the first (mru, they must be set aside in favor of Nanak’s ow n words. I'he
words of Nanak, preserved
.\di (iranth), tell us little
in the principal
about his
life
Sikh scripture (the
much about his doctrine behind the many hymns of
but
Fhe system of belief w hich lies Nanak begins by accepting the reality of karma and transmigration. All of us transmigrate in accordance vv ith the deeds vv hich w e perform, and if we are to achieve liberation from the cycle of transmigration it is and
belief.
essential that
we
liv
e the kind of
life vv
hich will earn the requisite karma.
Hindu and Muslim) emphasize obedience such outward conventions as temple or mosque worship, pilgrimage,
Traditional teachings (both to
the reading of sacred scriptures, and other such outward observances.
Such only
practices arc, according to bv’
Nanak,
futile.
Liberation can be achieved
inward meditation directed to Akal Purakh, the “Timeless Being.”
True religion
is
Akal Purakh,
interior.
as
conceived by (iuru Nanak,
is
the almighty
Oeator
and Sustainer of the universe, vv ithout form and beyond human reason yet ever accessible to those w ho turn to him in true devotion. How can
7
THE SIKHS the seeker find him? Akal Purakh reveals himself in the tidm or “divine
Name,”
correctly understood as
Because the entire creation
is
all
that constitutes the divine realitv.
a part
of the divine being, that same cre-
ation serves as the primarv revelation of Akal Purakh. Akal Purakh
w hich
revealed in the world is
lies
is
about us and w ithin us, and the world
thus to be understood as an expression of the ndm.
through the tidm Akal Purakh “speaks” the sabad^ ord which communicates the message of liberation to the
In revealing himself
the divine \\
devout believer. In so doing he acts (juru
is
The eternal
the mvstical “voice” of Akal Purakh uttering the divine
in the heart
and w
as the eternal Ciuru.
of the
humble devotee: Open vour
W ord
Look around vou behold the divine harmonv of the eves.
vou shall universe which .\kal Purakh has created. Bring yourself into accord with that divine harmonv and vou will live the kind of life which earns vou a liberating karma. Thus is eternal peace achieved and the cvcle of ithin vou, for there
transmigration brought to an end.
But how,
in actual practice,
can one achieve
this
harmonv and
live
which expresses it? Left to his ow n devices man follows the evil impulses w hich, dwelling within him, insistentlv prompt him to actions which can onlv prolong the cvcle of rebirth. I he solution the kind of
lies in
life
the practice of
ndm
shnaran, a regular discipline of inner medi-
which focuses on the omnipresence of the divine Name. The actual practice of ndm simaran or “remembrance of the divine Name” ranges from the repeating of a word or mantra (one which sum-
tation
marilv expresses the divine realitv) to the singing of devotional songs
and bevond that to mvstical concentration kind. Kach of these activities can be an simaran. I he purpose is to bring the entire harmonv with the divine rhythm; and this is
of the most sophisticated effective
method of ndm
being of the devotee into achieved through regular,
Name
disciplined
remembrance of the divine
methods.
requires no ritual observance, nor should the devotee aban-
It
.\s
or
woman
in
discipline
the mediator of divine
of .\kal Purakh.
all
of these
one which can be practiced bv anv the customarv circumstances of evervday life.
don the world. The
man
by any or
He
is
Name
teachings
Nanak
acted as the “voice”
acted, in other words, as the eternal (Juru, and
it
known. During his life time he attracted disciples (the original Sikhs) and before he died he appointed a successor to follow him as the second (Juru. Thus began is
as
Guru Nanak
that he
is
characteristically
3
77//:
SIK//S
the celebrated succession of the ten Sikh (iurus.
growth and varying circumstances the tradition
Amidst continuing
lasted until the death
of the tenth (iuru, (iobind Singh, in 1708. f^y that time the
community
known) had undergone a dramatic change, I'he dramatic change w hich w as to transform the Fanth did not take place in the time of the early (iurus. During the sixteenth century the Fanth continued to develop, and this rec|uired a more structured organization as it matured and expanded. Fhis included such important
(or
Panth
as
is
it
generally
features as the founding of Amritsar as a sacred center, but until the
beginning of the seventeenth century the Fanth remains very
much
the
Nanak-panth. It w as the community of Nanak’s followers, of those w ho revered the grow ing line of (kirus and accepted their teachings concerning deliverance through the divine Arjan, implemented
a
Name. Although
the fifth
Guru,
decision of crucial significance by compiling a
sacred scripture (the Adi Granth or (iranth Sahib) the form and fun-
damental belief of the community remained unchanged. Arjan died
in
1606 the Fanth was
(iiiru Arjan’s
death w
as,
still
hen Guru recognizably the Nanak-panth.
however, highly significant
in
\\
terms of fu-
fhe Mughal rulers of the Funjab had become suspicious of the growing community of Sikhs and Arjan’s death in Mughal custody signaled the beginning of official hostility towards the Fanth. fhis prompted an important change within the Fanth. According to Sikh tradition Guru Arjan adv ised his son and successor Hargobind to sit fully armed on his throne; and Hargobind, as sixth Guru, symbolically donned two sw ords. V\ hereas one sword represented the continuing spiritual authority of the (luru (pin) the other signified a newlyassumed temporal authority {min). Although there are some major problems associated w ith this tradition it is evident that the Fanth was beginning to assume a new militancy and that it was doing this in reture developments,
sponse to the pressure of early seventeenth-century circumstances.
The new policy
initiated
by the
sixth
Guru climaxed with
matic actions of the tenth, (iuru CJobind Singh.
A
the dra-
period of relative
peace had intervened during the middle decades of the seventeenth cen-
under the Emperor Aurangzeb much stricter measures were adopted and in 1675 the ninth Guru was executed in Delhi. His son, tury, but
Guru
was sheltered until he grew to manhood. As a young adult, however, he was soon involved in wars w ith hostile neighbors and eventually his enemies w ere joined by Mughal forees. Meanw hile he w as evidently contemplating a major restructur-
acceding to the
title
of
as a child,
4
THE SIKHS ing ot the Panth and in 1699 he took the deeisive step of his followers to enter the I
new
summoning
established order of the Khalsa.
Iv
hose w ho heeded the (iuru’s
summons and
offered themselves for
membership of the Khalsa w ere required to undergo a rite of baptism and to promise that thereafter they w ould accept the discipline required of all w ho w ere thus initiated, d he baptismal water was stirred with a two-edged sword, and the discipline w hich all had to accept included certain exterior insignia w hich ensured that the male Sikh would thereafter
be instantly recognizable.
yond dispute.
Phis
much
and apparently be-
clear
is
There are, however, several issues associated with the
founding of the Khalsa w hich
and some of these
raise difficulties
still
are too important to ignore.
There
is,
for
example, the question of precisely what the (Kiru aimed
by requiring all to accept a baptism which symbolically exalted the sword? Was he imposing an outward identity in order to ensure that Sikhs who had cravenly shrunk from recognition in the past would never again be able to conceal their identity? Or was he seeking to recall his Sikhs from loyalty to deputies (masand) w ho had once served the (iuru faithfully but had now become independent and corrupt? In summary terms it can be affirmed that an external identity became mandatory for the Sikh community (or at least for those Sikhs who elected to join the Khalsa) and two prominent features of that identity to achieve. \\ as he seeking to infuse a martial spirit
can also be affirmed.
It
certainly required
initiation to retain their hair
which
is
who
accepted the Khalsa
uncut and bear arms. The newly-fashioned
Khalsa community was thus identity
all
a militant
organization with an external
and the distinctive
typically perceived as the beard
turban. This
much
of the debate can be settled, but
some of the other
issues
demand a little more attention. There are three such issues. First, howdo we reconcile exterior symbols and explicit militancy with (iuru Nanak’s
stress
on inw ard devotion? Secondly, how
is
the militancy thus
affirmed by the Khalsa ideal to be defined? Thirdly, did (Kiru (iobind Singh’s decision
mean
that
all
Sikhs are required to become
members
of the Khalsa, or can one be a Sikh without actually obser\ ing the Khalsa discipline?
d'he
first
question arises from the fact that
terior meditation
Nanak had preached
and had so plainly denounced
ternal practices as a
means of
spiritual
5
in-
dependence on exdeliverance. Vet what could be all
rUE SIKHS more obviously
external than the eonspicuous insignia of the Khalsa or
indeed the greater part of the Rahit (the code of conduct) w hich
members
its
are retjuired to observe?
two answers
The first is that all such communities eventually retjuire at least a rudimentary organization and pattern of behavior, d he original adherents of any such movement may live by the vision and depend exclusiyely on the power of personal conviction. For later generations and larger numbers, There are
however,
a
at least
more
objective order
d he second answer
is
to this apparent contradiction.
needed.
is
that circumstances
had changed, d'he
first
Sikhs
were closely united by their common allegiance and their existence generated no significant hostility. A century later, however, the Panth had become larger and more diverse. (>onventions had been imported into the community by those who joined it, and its growing size had begun to cause alarm amongst the rulers. By the end of the seventeenth century internal pressures and external hostility had become serious and the policy adopted by the tenth (Juru was bound to differ from that of the first. To these two explanations Sikh tradition adds a significant gloss, an interpretation v\’hich derives directly from the doctrine of the eternal CJuru. The eternal (kiru is one and undivided. Proceeding from Akal Purakh it was mystically embodied in the ten (iurus, moving from each to his successor as a single flame passes from one torch to another. 1 he (iiiru who instituted the Khalsa was thus the same Guru as he who to gather at
Nanak’s
feet
had preached interior devotion to the divine Name, telligence
which must
obliterate
a single divine in-
possibility of inconsistency.
all
The second major question raised by the founding of the Khalsa concerns the nature of the militancy which its members are expected to practice. Does the Khalsa ideal encourage naked violence, strictly limited defensive postures, or something in between? The answer to this particular question has an obvious bearing on the current crisis in the Punjab.
how
is
If a militant
response
is
permitted or required then precisely
that response to be defined?
Sikh tradition
is
clear
on
this point.
Sayings attributed to
ind Singh certainly affirm the right to
add two major qualifications. The only
in
second have
first
Guru
(iob-
draw the sword, but they also is that the sword may be used
defense of truth, of righteousness, and of the faith; and the is
that
failed.
It
it
may
be draw n only w hen
is
thus
made
clear that the
6
all
other means of defense
sword may be wielded only
THE SIKHS to defend resort.
fundamental
Needless to sav,
mental rights,” but
concerned there
is
this
at least is
and that
rights,
still
it
mav
it
he draw n only as
a last
open the definition of “funda-
leaves
demonstrates that as
far as the tradition
absolutely no sanction for selfish, unprovoked or
capricious use of violence.
The tradition certainly affirms militancy
as
the proper response in certain circumstances, but they are circumstances
which should seldom
cent years
its
is
W hether
question to w hich
we
or not they have arisen in re-
shall return.
The third question posed by the inauguration of the Khalsa concerns relationship to the Sikh Panth. Are the two coterminous? In other
words, must a
a
arise.
all
Sikhs be
non-Khalsa Sikh?
Is it
members of
the Khalsa or
is
it
possible to be
possible to follow the teachings of
Nanak w ith-
out accepting a bounden duty to observe the later discipline of the Khalsa? If
time
we we
set the
shall
question in the context of (iuru (iobind Singh’s
own
soon discover that some of his leading disciples did not
From
presumably follows that one may indeed be a loyal Sikh without being a Sikh of the Khalsa. d he Khalsa may well be perceived as the ideal or orthodox form, but historically there is insufficient basis for claiming that all Sikhs must be Khalsa Sikhs, fhe term which is used during the eighteenth century to designate the non-Khalsa Sikh is Sahaj-dhan. This is set in contrast w ith Amrit-dbdn, the term w hich denotes a Sikh w ho has “taken amriT (that is a Sikh who has received the baptism of the Khalsa). d 0 this preliminary judgment must be added the fact that there are actually more than two Sikh identities and that today there is increasing pressure to acknow ledge only the Khalsa version as acceptable. In Sikh society today at least four definable identities can be distinguished. At either extreme stand the Amrit-dhari and the Sahaj-dhari. In between there are the Kes-dhan and those who for w ant of a better term w e must call the Maud Sikhs. The Kes-dhari Sikhs are those w ho maintain the uncut hair of the Khalsa, but do not receive baptism. Fhe Mona Sikhs are those who cut their hair, but w ho are distinguished from the Sahajdhari by their connections with the Khalsa. 1 his normally means that they belong to families with a Khalsa tradition and retain the Khalsa names (Singh for men and Kaur for women). If (Kiru (h)bind Singh had anticipated a period of conflict for his Sikhs he w as certainly justified by the events of the eighteenth century. receive the Khalsa initiation.
For the reniilinder of
his life
this
it
time he w as repeatedly involved
with neighboring states and w
ith
.Mughal forces (the
7
w arfare imperial power of in
THE SIKHS the time), and the struggle eontinued well into the eighteenth century. 1
enemy changed
he
as
Mughal authority rapidly diminished and At-
ghan invaders took its place, but the hostility persisted with the Sikhs on one side and Aluslim antagonists on the other. his is the heroic period of Sikh tradition, the century which tested the Khalsa and proved it to be unyielding. It is also the period which critically molded the actual conventions of the Khalsa. By the time it emerged from that cruciallv important century its basic conventions were well defined. Khalsa Sikhs do not cut their hair, they do not touch tobacco, they wear distinctive blue garments, and they wield a skillful sword. I'hev also emerged in triumph. The turn of the century marks I
the effective beginning of the reign of Ranjit Singh, Maharaja of a united
Punjab
until his
death
in
1839.
The death of Ranjit Singh was soon followed by political and military collapse. I he British had been on his borders since early in his reign and following two brief wars with his successors the Punjab became a part of British India in 1849. Very soon the new rulers were confidently predicting the imminent demise of the Sikh faith, firm in their assurance that the Sikhs would “merge back into Hinduism.”
We
upon another of the crucial periods in Sikh history, at once important for what it produced and uncertain in terms of how change actually took place. I he clear result was eventually to be a reafenter here
firmation of the Khalsa identity as the orthodox form for those
\\
ho
regarded themselves as Sikhs. 1873 traditionally marks the beginning
w as
which the
Singh Sabha was founded. Alarmed by evidence of wavering loyalties a group of Sikh leaders gathered in Amritsar and decided to establish a society dedicated to recovery and reform. Although the Singh Sabha movement of the period, for that
was
to be
the year in
plagued by divisions, some of
its
first
more determined members
nevertheless succeeded in generating a major restatement of the Sikh
and during their period of inlluenee there was wards a restored Khalsa loyalty. faith,
In this regard the British
may
a
strong
also have played a part
move
to-
by favoring
the Sikhs as one of the “martial races of India” and by requiring their
Sikh recruits to observe the
Army
or police authorities
full regalia
who
of the orthodox Khalsa identity.
seek to discourage such conventions
today might well ponder the British example.
The
British firmly en-
couraged such observances because they rightly believed that by maintaining them they would ensure higher morale and a stronger loyalty.
S
THE SIKHS The Singh Sabha movement \\ as overtaken during the seeond period of the present centurv bv a more radical Sikh leadership, and during the period 1920-1925 the new lv-formed Akali Dal (Akali Partv) waged a
non-violent struggle with the British authorities.
I
he objective of the
campaign was to have control of the principal gurdwaras (temples) transferred from their hereditarv incumbents to the communitv as a \\ hole. Needless to sav, the episode was a great deal more complex than this would suggest and much remains to be learnt. Once again we must be content with a summarv of the actual outcome. The British, recognizing the strength and determination of the Akali movement, eventuallv agreed to vest control of the gurdwaras in a committee elected bv adult Sikh suffrage. I he committee assumed the name Shiromani (jurdwara Farbandhak (Committee (or SGP(>); and the allimportant definition of the Sikh voter w ritten into the 1925 Sikh (iurd-
waras Act implied that such voters would be Khalsa Sikhs. Phis was not explicitlv stated, merelv the requirement that all should be Sikhs
and onlv Sikhs.
In effect this
Sahaj-dharis, most of
whom
excluded
a substantial
proportion of the
regarded themselves as both Hindu and
Sikh. Khalsa Sikhs tvpicallv have no such sense of a dual identitv. riie 1925 a
more
Act
settled
one
serious problem.
in the
194()s the
would
this
ditional
As
issue,
but
political
British India
moved towards independence
prospect of partition became
mean
for the Sikhs?
homeland
to the
One
Muslim
circumstances s(H)n raised
a real possibilitv.
proposal would deliver their tra-
state of Pakistan,
An
Sikhs could never willinglv accept.
\\ hat
an option w hich
alternative, scarcely
more wel-
come, would have it divided between the two successor states. In the event it was the latter which occurred in 1947, driving the Sikhs (and the Hindus) of western Punjab across the nev\- border into the eastern section retained
bv
India.
Although Partition caused widespread chaos the Indian portion of the Punjab recovered with remarkable speed, at least in economic terms. 'Hie Punjab is an unusuallv fertile area and aided by new strains of w heat its cultivators were soon producing a rich return from their harvest. Fhis brought prosperitv to the fortunate few w ho ow ned land in sufficient quantitv, and a substantial projxirtion of the beneficiaries were Sikhs, fhose who gained most from the so-called “(ireen Revolution” were mainlv Sikhs w ho belonged to the jat caste. Jat Sikhs had long been both the dominant caste in rural Punjab and by far the largest caste
group within the Sikh community. Inevitably the
9
political devel-
rnE SIKHS opnicnts w hich have occurred
members
remained the
Punjabi
modern Punjab conspicuously involve
of this particular sector of Punjabi society.
I'.eonomie success still
in
s(K:iet\’
w as w cIcoitr:, but
it
alone was not enough.
There
of Sikh identitv and the role of Sikhs in
cjiiestion
and government. Those
who
sought to protect and nourish
the traditional Khalsa identity generallv believed that for this purpose a
well-disposed administration would be essential, one which would
protect Sikh interests
the real motive jabi State),
w
w Inch
ithout penalizing other communities.
lav
This
w as
behind the campaign for Punjabi Suba (Pun-
though the ostensible cause w
as language.
The demand for Punjabi Suba required a state boundarv w hich corresponded to the di\ ide separating Punjabi and I lindi speakers, and this in practice meant a smaller state than the Punjab which took shape in India at independence. Prior to independence the Sikhs had formed the third-largest communitv in undivided Punjab. Partition had separated them from the Muslims, but even in the post- 1947 Indian state thev were still a minoritv. A redraw ing of the boundaries on linguistic lines would finallv produce a Sikh majoritv and with it the prospect of reasonable protection for Sikh interests.
Although the
linguistic
demand was
strictlv in
visions of the Indian constitution, Jawaharlal
accord w
Nehru
ith
resisted
the pro-
regard-
it,
form of communalism. E,ventually it w as his daughter Indira Gandhi who conceded the claim, partlv in response to the no-
ing
it
as a covert
table contribution
made
b\’
Punjabi Suba was granted lapse of Ranjit Singh’s
Sikhs during the Indo-Pakistan in
1966 and for the
kingdom Sikhs could
first
W ar
of 1965.
time since the col-
feel that
thev had
a state
of their own.
The majoritv conferred bv the redrawing of the state boundarv w as not a large one and it w as immediatelv nullified bv a division of Sikh support between the Akali But the
realitv
proved to be verv different.
Dal (w hich claimed to represent the distinctive interests of the Sikhs)
and the (Congress Partv (w hich claimed to be strictlv secular). Punjabi Suba certainlv involved a much greater use of the Punjabi language for official purposes, and that was undoubtedlv a gain, in that Sikhs have a strong affection for what thev regard as their ow n special language. In other respects, however, there was little evidence to suggest that Punjabi Suba had
made anv
significant difference to Punjabi soeietv in
general or to Sikh interests in particular.
Lp
to this point there are unlikelv to
10
be strong differences of opinion
THE SIKHS \\
ith
regard to the unfolding pattern of Punjab politics or the role of
Sikhs within that pattern.
From
here on, however,
we
enter disputed
two conflicting interpretations. One of these interpretations is dominant in India as a whole and largely informs the presentation of new s which emanates from New Delhi and the Punjab. It is, in other words, the perspective which one territory
and
it
becomes necessary
to present
generally finds in the media, although there have been recent signs of a
change
may I
in this regard.
1 he other interpretation
is
the view which one
expect to hear w ithin the Sikh communitv.
he dominant view runs, more or
less, as
follow
s:
Having
secure their objectives by means of Punjabi Suba those distinctively Sikh state initiated a
objective
was
to secure a larger
who
new campaign on two
measure of
state
failed to
sought
fronts.
autonomv.
I
a
One
he other
was to rallv Sikh support to the Akali Dal, thus ensuring that the larger autonomv could be utilized to protect Sikh interests. W hereas the former objective was promoted on the all-India stage the latter was pursued within the Punjab. Sikhs w ere to be persuaded that the Panth was in danger, and that onl\’ bv lovaltv to its traditions and its declared defenders could
it
be saved.
Amongst those w ho led the campaign (so this version continues) were many who could be described as “moderates,” men and women who supported a limited increase in state autonomv and w ho w anted no part in violence,
w
ilder
d he objective and the rhetoric served, however, to
men. d hese were the “extremists,”
to the simplistic notion of an willint; to
a variety
raise
up
of Sikh dedicated
independent Khalistan and more than
use brutal violence as a means to attain
it.
Bit
bv
bit
the
and strong-arm tactics of the extremists weakened the resistance of the moderates w hile their inflamatorv appeals to the martial traditions of the communitv won them increasing support from the rank and file. Under the fiercely malign leadership of Sant Jarnail Singh Bhindranwale the extremists entrenched themselves in the buildings threats
surrounding the Golden d'emple, eventually necessitating militarv ac-
June 1984. The attack on the (iolden 1 emple complex succeeded in killing Bhindranwale and manv of his followers, but the crisis was not yet over. Mrs. (hmdhi’s ow n bodvguard had been subverted bv extremist propaganda with the result that she was assassinated by two of her guards on October 31, 1984. Phis killing, together with the manv others w hich have since occurred in the Punjab and elsewhere, mean that the crisis tion in earl V
THE SIKHS
is
There must be several vears of firm resistanee to un-
not vet over.
demands before peaee and stability can eventually rePunjab. The alternative would be to risk the very unity of
aeeeptable Sikh
turn to the
which no responsible citizen could contemplate. That is one interpretation. The other one claims that the Punjab issue must be set w ithin the context of all-India politics and specifically the electioneering strategv of the ruling (Congress government in New Delhi. In order to maintain control of the central government the C>ongress Partv must retain solid support in the dominant lindi-speaking area of northern central India. This is best achieved bv single-issue electoral campaigns based on incidents such as the Bangladesh W ar or on striking claims such as Mrs. (iandhi’s famous slogan Garihi hatao (Abolish povIndia, a possibilitv
I
had decided that the issue
ertv). (Congress strategists
for the mid-eighties
should be the unitv of India and that in order to promote this issue
some
potential threats to Indian unitv should be given prominence.
areas
v\
1
he
hich could conceivablv serve this purpose were Assam, Kashmir
and the Punjab. These three states could be represented as menacing the unitv of India if strong Congress government were not retained. Punjab a part of this strategy involved the locating of a Sikh leader who, bv the stridenev of his demands, would simultaneouslv embarrass the Akalis and prove the point about threats to national unitv. The person chosen for this purpose was none other than In the case of the
jarnail Singh Bhindranwale, inducted into
Punjab
politics in
accordance
with Congress strategv. Unfortunatelv Bhindranw ale turned out to be more than merelv dent.
He
proved to be
his
own man,
eventuallv necessitating armed
action on a scale not originallv envisaged, d his did not that the strategv
well indeed.
As
had
failed.
reports of
On
the contrarv,
it
mean, how ever,
was succeeding verv
mounting violence circulated the
rest of India
took fright and increasinglv rallied to the support of Congress.
support became overw helming w
ith
This
the assassination of Mrs. Ciandhi,
sw eeping her son Rajiv to the most impressive of
W ith
stri-
all
Congress
victories.
the electoral objective achieved Rajiv Ciandhi could afford to
be magnanimous and
in
julv 1985 he reached an agreement with the
“moderate” Sikh leader Sant Tlarchand Singh Longowal. This agreement coneeded most of what the Akalis had all along been demanding, thereby raising the cpiestion of w hy the eentral government had previously offered such strenuous resistance. Klections were subsequentlv
held in the Punjab and amidst general relief the Akalis won.
12
The
dis-
THE SIKHS tasteful task of quelling the violenee could
now
be
to the Sikhs
left
themselves.
By now
,
however,
a
Pandora’s box
w as w ell and
trulv open. Feelings
had been violentlv inflamed and politicians in other parts of India had discovered the rewards to be secured bv maintaining the (Congress strategv, Rajiv Ciandhi
mav have been
sincere in signing the Punjab
of July 1985 but his control was insufficicntlv secure to
Accord enable him to
was his promise that the citv of (diandigarh would be transferred from central government control to the Punjab on January 26, 1986. Fwo years later (Chandigarh still redeliver
on
his promises.
I
he
test case
mains untransferred.
The Sikhs have meanwhile been subjected to a concerted campaign ranging from vilification to murder, d he latter reached a gorv climax during the davs immediatelv following the assassination of Mrs. Ciandhi in killings which seemed plainlv to reflect political planning and direction. d o their suffering has been added a campaign of deliberate misinformation designed to convince India and the world that the root of the problem lav in Sikh intransigence and Sikh \ iolence.
w ill tell which of the two is the more accurate, d here are, however, some certainties to which we can point, the first concerning the claim that Sikhs must have their ow n independent state: the Punjab should be separated from India and That
the other interpretation and time alone
is
reconstituted as the nation-state of Khalistan. Although no one can cite reliable figures or accurate! v estimate proportions, there little It
doubt that few Sikhs
powerful appeal as
low ever impractical
it
mav
far
be
it
to be
regard Khalistan as a realistic option.
should also be recognized, however, that the
ercises a I
in India
seems
as
notioti
of Khalistan ex-
Sikh sympathies are concerned.
nevertheless provides an immediate
focus for outraged feelings and for the anger of frustration.
is
d he second point deserving emphasis
is
entirelv understandable, regardless of
how one
that the Sikh sense of outrage
interprets the past and
which one may envisage for the future. The attack on the (iolden d emple complex had a traumatic effect on Sikhs cvervw here, as did the killings w hich followed the assassination of Mrs. (iandhi. Repeated emphasis on Sikh violence and cases of calculated humiliation aggravate that sense of outrage, and the feeling is further regardless of the solutions
strengthened bv the repeated implications that violence confined to die Sikhs. ers receive
such
little
\\
hv, thev insistentlv ask, does
attention?
Most such
13
\
is
somehow
iolence bv oth-
instances are, thev maintain.
niE SIKHS ignored and the few as a
hieh reeeive attention are typieallv represented
\\
provoked baeklash.
This sense of outrage ean be regarded as a general Sikh response, one
wliieh will be found amongst Sikhs of virtually
opinions, d o
must be added
it
nificant cleavages have
extent the
first
W bile stronglv
two sigthe Sikh communitv. l o some
line of division
rural Sikhs
backgrounds and
a third point the fact that
developed w ithin
and principle
boundarv separating
^as
all
from those
who
censuring government policy the
follows the traditional
belong to urban castes. latter nevertheless
tend
from the fiercer reactions of the rural communitv, and to talk in terms of compromise and settlement rather than retaliation or revenge. In the villages one encounters a stronger sense to distance themselves
of grievance and
a lesser
w
illingness to seek conciliation.
Repeatedlv one reads of or hears references to young village
men who
have disappeared, and to claims that these young Sikhs have been seized
and
Mere too
killed.
it
is
impossible to obtain any thing resembling ac-
doubt that strong feelings have issue and that they are feelings which w ill not
curate figures, but there can be
been generated by
this
little
easilv dissipate.
.\lanv
affected
voung men from and
in the villages there
have become seriouslv dis-
appears to be w idespread
activities.
covert
I'he
ensures that they will usually be protected from the police. jectives
if
sympathy which thev command is redevout remembrance of Jarnail Singh Bhindranwale and it
support for their flected in a
village families
may
generate an uncertain response, thev
mav
I
heir ob-
lack firm lead-
and they may be ever vulnerable to factional splits, vet none of these problems spells an easy end to their disaffection, d heir resistance continues and neither firmness nor conciliation, timelv concessions nor government compromise hold promise of an effective solution. The other divisive feature of particular concern derives from the everwidening gap between Hindu and Sikh in the Punjab. In this, as in so many other respects, it is difficult to gauge the true nature or extent of alienation, but no one seems inclined to contest its existence. It is, indeed, an issue w hich extends well bevond the Punjab. In other parts of India Sikhs have reported a grow ing hostility’, and the tendency for I lindus to move ay\ ay from the Punjab is accompanied bv a discreet ership,
movement
of Sikhs in the opposite direction, d'he actual
not to be great, but
they oyvn property
many have in the
numbers seem
taken the precaution of ensuring that
Punjab. Sikhs li\ing in the Delhi area
14
feel
THE SIKHS particularly insecure, well
remembering the days and nights w hich
fol-
lowed the assassination of Mrs. (iandhi.
Our this
is
account of the Sikhs must remain unfinished. In inevitable, for as long as there
their narrative critical stage, it
\\ ill
is life
continue to unfold.
I
in a
a sense,
community
of course,
or a people
he record of the Sikhs
is
at a
however, and few observers would be prepared to predict
far into the future. Just
what
that record holds time alone will
15
tell.
2
The
Origins of the Sikh Tradition
s
IKHISM, we are often told, is a sect of Hinduism. Guru Nanak may have founded a new panth or religious community within the larger Hindu fold, but he neither violated nor abandoned the Hindu tradition.
Born
Hindu, he remained one until the day he died, and so too did his successors. Fhe doctrines w hich he affirmed were already current in the North India of his ow n period and the message w hich he preached was entirely congenial to many of his Hindu audience. Fanths are a regular feature of the Hindu experience and Nanak, together with his followers, merely added one more. If we seek the origins of the Sikh tradition the place to look is surely the wider area of I lindu tradition and specifically the teachings of the Sants. Nanak did not found “Sikhism,” for this would have meant founding something w hich already exa
isted.
That
Nanak
is
one point of view
A
rather different version of the claim that
did not found Sikhism has been expressed by \\ ilfred (Antwell
him “the founder of Sikhism,” as is often done, is surely misconstrue both him and history.”’ Professor Smith did not have
Smith: “d o to
.
call
16
ORICIXS OF THE SIKH
TRADmOS
contemporary Hindu doctrine or the Sant tradition in mind when he made this statement. He was looking forward to the “Sikhism” which we know today, insisting that his criticism of the common verdict on Nanak relates to the future implications of the term “Sikhism” rather than to the past. Sikhism, he maintains,
is
the evolved product of sub-
sequent centuries, a complex system of beliefs and practices
Nanak
certainly did not “found.”
came
organization and institutions
many
In
it
not leave us
of the Sikh tradition?
If
w here we
“Sikhism”
must surely mean
it
I'he
is
is
an exceedingly helpful
started with regard to the origins to be construed as a later devel-
Nanak and the early Nanakwithin the Hindu tradition. Problems,
that both
panth are to be located firmly
how ever,
a vision.”
later (p. 67).
respects C>antwell Smith’s analysis
one, but does
opment
Nanak had “preached
w hich Guru
and they are considerably aggravated by the claim that Sikhism (or the Nanak-panth) must be regarded as a sect of Hinduism, Smith’s comment on “Sikhism” we can add his sensible l o C.antwcll insistence that there is no such thing as “Hinduism” (pp. 65-66). A persist
moreover, necessarily implies the existence of an agreed orthodoxy
sect,
and even those at
defining
its
who
en\ isage an
entit\' called
I
linduism might well baulk
orthodox form, d he proposition that Sikhism
is
a sect
of
Hinduism is beginning to look distinctly unsatisfactory. One must also be aw are that the proposition will sound exceedingly offensive to
many
Sikhs. Phis cannot be lightly dismissed as a prejudice
of the naive or the result of generations of biased nurture. Although
Sikh scholars are certainly prepared to acknowledge the major devel-
opments that take place during the centuries following Nanak they are most unlikely to accept the notion that he merely replicated a range of doctrines and ideals current within the society of his own time. Professor
1
larbans Singh, a distinguished interpreter of Sikh history
and tradition, explicitly affirms that (iuru Nanak was indeed the founder: “Attempts have been made to split (iuru Nanak’s doctrine into various strands and to trace their origin to preceding schools of thought. But to understand (iuru Nanak fully, we have to look at the totality of his tenet and at what impact it made on history. In this perspective,
we
shall see that
faith.
cant
(iuru
Nanak
is
historically the
founder of the Sikh
His precept was definitively the starting-point. In many
w avs,
it
signifi-
signalled a new’ departure in contemporar\’ religious ethos.”’
Fo ensure thgt his interpretation is clearly understood Harbans Singh quotes the words of the Indian Muslim scholar M. Mujeeb: “ Fhe rev-
17
OF THE SIKH TKADITIOX
()RI(;/\S
came
elation that
and
as
Nanak must have been
to (Juru
independent of history and
records of the Sikhs show
There
it
social
direet
and immediate
circumstances as the religious
to be.”^
certainly an orthodox Sikh point of view concerning the
is
Nanak, and Harbans Singh expresses it soberly. Others yehemence. d his plainly is their right and outsiders must
status of (iiiru state
it
w ith
a
learn to appreciate their
Sikhism and
\
iew’.
It
is
we might w ell conclude
a
conspicuous feature of modern
mere existence demolishes Sikhism can be sensibly regarded as a sect of Hinduism that
its
any claim that or of anything else. But this acknow ledgment does not solv e the real problem, d'here are in fact several problems concerning (iuru Nanak which still remain, and the historian cannot be deflected from a potentially embarrassing
by the strength of a modern interpretation or the vehemence of its supporters. The relationship of Nanak to the belief systems of his own day remains an issue, one which must be reexamined in some detail during the course of this chapter. The other problem vv hich must also be reviewed arises from the traditional accounts of Nanak’s life story and the treatment which these accounts receive today. Although both problems were raised as long ago as 1968 in (lunl task
seems that both are still very much with us."^ Quite by chance Guru Sdnak and the Sikh Religion appeared at an unusually fortunate time; indeed, it would have been necessary to wait
Siinak and the Sikh Religion
500 years for issued in
a better
November
it
opportunity to publish such
a
book.
in the
the principal United
first
1968 in anticipation of the year marking the quin-
centenary of the birth of Nanak. The reception which
was foreshadowed
was
It
it
was
to receive
speech read by the (>hief Justice of India
Kingdom
at
function held to celebrate the quincen-
Mr. M. Hidavatullah delivered an address which comprised two distinct sections. The first portion dealt with the life of Nanak and for this section the speaker ignored Guru Sdnak and the Sikh Religion, relying instead on the janamtenary. Speaking in the Albert Hall in mid-1969
sakhis (the traditional narratives of the (iuru’s
life').
In the second half,
however, the tone of the speech changed dramatically. The second section dealt with the teachings of Nanak and it soon became clear that
much ot
it
of
it
word
had been drawn from Guru Sdnak and for
the Sikh Religion,
word.
This has since proved to be the standard response to the b(K)k. its
some
treatment of the teachings of
Nanak seems
18
to
W hereas
have been largely ac-
ORIGIXS OF THE SIKH TRADITIOX
cepted,
analysis of the biographical traditions has generally been ig-
its
nored within the Fanth.
The one
significant qualification attached to
the teachings portion of the book has been
its
treatment of (iuru
Nanak’s status as “founder” of the Sikh tradition, fhat issue will be discussed further following an examination of the response to the book’s claim that the janam-sakhis are untrustworthy as records of the actual life
of
Cmru Xanak.
The claim that the janam-sakhis are untrustworthy as biographical sources was not meant to suggest that they are yalueless as historical records. They are indeed yaluable in this regard, but their yalue principally deriyes from the insight which they supply concerning the deyeloping beliefs of the later Panth. Phis issue was subsequently treated in Early Sikh Eradition,^ a book which was written as a companion yolume to Guru Xanak and the Sikh Religion, fhe earlier work had focused on the janam-sakhi contribution to our knowledge of the actual details of the (iuru’s life; and the conclusion w hich it drew was that they proyide yery
little
reliable information.
could be know n about the
life
sakhis early references to
Xanak
of
From
this
it
followed that
little
iuru Xanak, for apart from the janam-
(
are exceedingly scarce. His
own
con-
siderable works, faithfully recorded in the Adi Ciranth, proyide nothing
more than an occasional glimpse, fleeting and tantalizing. 1 he final conclusion was that the know n life of Guru Xanak could be recorded in four short paragraphs.
d'he
first
Sikh Religion
and
to test
and scholars are places
response to the biographical portion of Guru Xanak and
the
was a brief flurry of actiyity intended to probe its findings them rigorously. (Contemporary sources were scrutinized v\
ere despatched to
which
Assam,
Sri
I^nka, and Baghdad, d'hese
figure prominently in the traditional records
and w hich
had receiyed special attention in the book’s analysis.^ Fhe expedition to Sri Lanka produced new information which seemed, at first sight, to offer strong support for a visit by (iuru Xanak. Subsequently, however, it was shown that information which had been supplied in Sri
Lanka and accepted
in
good
faith
was
made
in fact
wholly inaccurate.*^ Fhe
Guru Xanak and the Sikh Religion thereafter lost its driv e and little has been done since. A few books show that the biographical message of Guru Xanak and the Sikh Religion has been understood and that their authors have generally accepted it.“’ For the most part, howev er, this portion of the book has been ignored. Most publications from within the Panth thus continue to treat the effort to disprove the claims
in
19
()R/(j/\s
or THE SIKH r rad it i os
janam-sakhis as acceptable sources for the
of (iuru
life
Nanak and
supply accounts based on the anecdotes which they record. it
true, a rationalizing process at
is
work
in that the
are eliminated leaving only a refined product.
It is
I'here
to is,
grosser elements
nevertheless a very
one which offers a marked contrast to the four paragraphs in (iunl Sanak and the Sikh Religion. It is, moreover, a version w hich continues to bear the visible imprint of M. A. .Macauliffe. Fogether with his Singh Sabha associates Macauliffe had decided that the substantial remnant,
Rurdtan janam-sakhi tradition supplied a more creditable account of the of
life
Nanak than
the other available traditions."
was thus the Purdtan schema which provided Macauliffe with his framework and ever since his work was published in 1909 it has dominated the field. Details continue to be drawn from the other janamIt
sakhi traditions, but the usual pattern remains the distinctive chronol-
ogy and
itinerary of the Purdtan version.
account as
when
far as
Fhis follows the standard
Nanak’s childhood and early adulthood are concerned,
comes to the period of his travels it adopts a dig-vijaya perspective and sends him on journeys to the four cardinal points of but
it
the compass. I'he Purdtan version offers a relatively coherent reordering
of the it is
many
anecdotes which together constitute the janam-sakhis and
not surprising that
it
should have exercised
a
strong appeal for
men
with an essentially rational approach to the problem of biography." In terms of
its
biographical analysis, therefore. Guru Sdnak and the
Sikh Religion seems largely to have failed, at least is
w
ithin the Panth. d'his
unfortunate, for there are at least three reasons for concern.
these reasons need not
mean
be accepted
if
has
come
in detail,
to review
its
that the specific findings of the
U hile
book must
valid they will at least suggest that the time
general approach and to determine again whether
or not that approach deserves to be reapplied.
Fhis task,
if it
is
un-
dertaken, should also involve a review of the case for janam-sakhi interpretation a
which
is
made
in Early Sikh Tradition.
The
issue
depends upon
thorough understanding of the nature and content of the janam-sakhis,
aspects of the general problem
w hich were not adequately covered
in
Guru Sdnak and the Sikh Religion. Fhe first reason concerns the relationship betw een the life of Guru Nanak and his many compositions recorded in the Adi Granth. Although it will sound exceedingly presumptuous it must nevertheless be maintained that these works cannot be fully understood if they are not
()R/CI\S
OF THE SIKH TRADITIOS
A
firmly w ithin their historical context.
set
that context consists of the actual
many
sible to ascertain
life
very significant portion of
of the (iuru.
of the details of that
life,
may not be we should at
It
but
protect oursehes against mistaken or misleading yersions.
Read
posleast
literally
the janam-sakhis must lead us into that trap. They are themselyes interpretations of the
life
and mission of Baba Nanak, and
as historical records of the actual life of (iuru
if
Nanak they
we
trust
them
will assuredly
skew our interpretation of his works. A conspicuous example of this effect is supplied by the strong janamsakhi insistence on the irenic purpose of the (iuru’s mission. “Na koT hindu hai na koT musalaman,” he is alleged to have declared as he emerged from his life-changing vision of Akal Purakh: “ fhere is neither Hindu nor Muslim.”' In another famous Puratafi reference Baba Nanak is said to have dressed in an odd assemblage of clothes combining Hindu and Muslim styles. Other janam-sakhi features reinforce this image, leaving the clear and distinct impression that a fundamental intention of (juru Nanak’s mission was to draw Hindu and Muslim together. I'here can be little doubt that this janam-sakhi image has significantly influenced the interpretation of Nanak’s works. Indeed, origin of the
w idespread
may
it
yet erroneous notion that his
w orks
represent a conscious syncretism, one which sought to blend
Muslim
beliefs.
ample of the
1
which
his notion,
risks associated
be discussed
will
w ith misconstruing
well be the
whole iindu and
as a I
later,
is
an ex-
the true nature of the
janam-sakhis. This leads to the second reason for disputing false interpretations of
and work of (mru Nanak which must suffer from these misinterpretations; understanding of the janam-sakhis themselves will also suffer, and if they are to be treated the janam-sakhis.
as little
It
is
more than sources
yield their true value. later Panth.'^
can
not merely the
tell a
I
life
for the life of
he
real
Guru Nanak
they will never
value of the janam-sakhis concerns the
Produced within the context of the developing Panth they
great deal about
it.
I
he historian
who
seeks in
them extensive
growth of the Khalsa vv ill be disappointed, but certainly not the scholar w ho works on the earlier period of development. Even the Khalsa period can be illuminated by a product such as the BiO Janaw-sakhP^ and because the janam-sakhis continue their growth right up to the recent past they can contribute inmaterial relating to the origins and
sights across the entire span of Sikh history, d his they are unlikely to
21
ORICIXS or THE SIKH TRADITIOS
do
if
they are treated as doeuments and traditions relating exclusively
to the actual life of (iuru
Nanak. Interpreted
as biographies they are
deprived of their true value.
A
third reason for concern 'may perhaps be found in
which constitute the modern he outsider who ventures to com-
Sikh society, particularly those parts of Sikh diaspora
ment on Sikh
in \\ estern countries,
I
contemporary
it
society runs the risk of earning a well-merited rebuke,
and the opinion which follows may well deserve this response. It does seem, however, that for those who value the religious content of the Sikh tradition there are considerable dangers associated with any in-
on treating the janam-sakhis as reliable records of the life of (iiiru Nanak. Sikh children w ho receive a \\ estern-style education will assuredly imbibe attitudes which encourage skepticism, and having done so they are most unlikely to view traditional janam-sakhi perceptions with approval. Coven the emphasis which is typically laid on stories concerning (oirii Nanak there is a risk that Sikhism as a whole may come to be associated with the kind of marvels and miracles which are the janamsakhi stock-in-trade. Problems w ith this particular feature of the total Sikh tradition may well carry over into other areas. For some the price may be worth paving, but at least they should be aw are of the risks involved in adopting the traditional approach. Seemingly harmless stosistence
ries
can be
lethal to one’s faith.
The janam-sakhi image of Baba Nanak leads us back to the problem w ith which we began and so to the (iuru’s teachings. 1 here can be no doubt concerning the dominant janam-sakhi view of his status. From the wonders associated with his birth to the miraculous disappearance of his earthly body the stress is strongly on the divinity of Nanak and on the unique quality of his message. Here too the janam-sakhis have presumably exercised a significant influence on subsequent interpretations. Nurtured in this understanding of his role and status we can entertain only one possible view concerning the nature of his teachings. The message preached by Nanak was divinely given and unique, the Word of the eternal Ciuru uttered through its living embodiment. If this is indeed the ease it presumably follows that the message began w ith (iuru Nanak and that he is indeed the founder of the Sikh taith. In spite of the sceptical tone running through this discussion there is an obvious case to be made for accepting the claim that
Guru Nanak
should be regarded as the founder of the Sikh Panth, and that
in a cer-
ORIGISS OF THE SIKH TRADITIOX Panth can be construed as coterminous with the Sikh I'here can be no questioning the fact that Ciuru Nanak attracted
tain sense the faith. a
group of followers;
that these first disciples constituted the original
nucleus of the Nanak-panth; and that the continuity of this newly-formed
community was ensured by a spiritual lineage. If
we
the appointment of a successor Ciuru and
are talking about the Panth, the line
which we
must end with the person of Nanak, thus confirming his status as founder, fhe Sikh faith, howeyer it may be conceiyed, is inextricably Ixiund to the Panth and whatever intluences may hav e molded the eyoK’ing Panth its connection with Nanak must surely be secure. trace back in time
This, eral
however,
is
avoiding the difficult issue associated with the gen-
question of Sikh origins, (^an the teachings of
garded
as
Nanak
really
be
re-
unique? fhe question leads us back to the claim with which
this discussion
began.
It is a
question which must be asked because the
fundamental doctrines w hich inform the works of Nanak are to be found
elsewhere I
in the
North India of
lere the reference
is
his
own
time and the immediate past.
to the Sant tradition of
North
India, the range of
which stressed such features as the formless quality of (iod {nirgutja) and a doctrine of deliverance which attached no significance to caste. Phis is the tradition which evokes such names as Kal)ir and Raidas. Outside the Panth most scholars include Nanak within the same tradition. Although the first (iuru is seldom if ever called Sant Nanak (a title which most Sikhs would find exceedingly demeaning) his place w ithin the movement is explicitly affirmed. Nanak, it is claimed, replicated teachings which w ere already current in North India. \\ hether or not he received his doctrines from Kabir fhe belief system promulgated by the Sants w as is of no consecjuence. gaining widespread currency and Nanak could have absorbed its ideals from a variety of possible sources, fhe fact that he so faithfully reproduces these doctrines sets him firmly within the Sant tradition, effectively destroying any claims to significant originality. Kven the appointreligious understanding
ing of a successor does nothing to affect this judgment. Spiritual lineages
one wants more recent examples with Sikh the Nirankari, Namdhari, and Beas Radhasoami move-
are forev er appearing and affiliations,
ments
if
will readily oblige.
In stating the issue so frankly
offense and of alienating
begun.
It
many
must nevertheless be
one runs
a serious risk
of causing grave
readers before the real discussion has clearly stated
if
we
are to grapple ad-
equately and' sympathetically with the question of Sikh origins.
23
\\ as
OR/CISS OR rHE SIKH TRADITION
Nanak merely another he entered on
Sant, or are there distinetive elaims which
his behalf? If
we concede
may
that the links with Sant doctrine
must we then accept that the Sikh movement is a Sant movement? Should the Nanak-panth be properly regarded as one amongst many such panths emerging within the larger context of Hindu tradition and still remaining a part of it? For some participants in this debate these questions normally imply affirmative answers, and the answers are commonly carried through to the present day. Subsequent developments may have transformed the later Panth, but it has never renounced its direct descent from the teachings of Nanak nor have its members effectively abandoned their are altogether too obvious to be ignored
place within the structure of caste society. For
and such incidents
as
participants the ques-
hev recur repeatedly within Sikh sothe current crisis in the Punjab greatly sharpen
tions are not simply academic. ciety
all
I
their thrust.
answer one must first understand the tradition which allegedly supplies the principal components of Nanak’s doctrine; then survey the teachings of Nanak, briefly examining the fundamental features which they offer and setting those features within the total system w hich his works enable us to construct; and finally return to the problem of origins just broached and endeavor to find a solution. In order to attempt an
I
or
he Sant tradition of northern India can be viewed both as
method of
spiritual liberation
and
as a
form of
a
sadhan
social protest.
Both
elements are in fact inextricably linked. Most of the tradition’s leading
exponents were from lower castes and the theory of spiritual release
which they
state or
assume
in their religious
songs
is
one w hich plainly
rejects the relevance of caste status in matters pertaining to the soul’s
deliverance from the bondage of transmigration.
scorned, as are
all
who
Brahmans
are typically
claim to exercise authority as purveyors of re-
Fhe condemnation was such authority and its claimants,
ligious merit or as mediators of divine grace.
one which the Sants applied Muslim as well as Hindu.
As
makes
to
all
and unqualified emphasis on the interior nature of the spiritual understanding and on the discipline required in order to secure freedom from the suffering of death and rebirth. I heir ultimate goal remained the same as that of the \ aishnava bhakti w ith which Sant docrine has so often been confused, the same indeed as Hindu sadhan in general. Fhe objective was nioksa, liberation from the transmigratorv cycle and from the suffering this verdict
clear the Sants laid firm
ORIGINS OF THE SIKH TRADITION which necessarily attends nor of the consequences individual performs.
I
\\
it.
I
here
is
no denying the
reality of
karma,
hich ineluctably follow the actions which each
he difference concerns the method whereby one
breaks or terminates the cycle and to some extent the quality of nioksa
\\
hich the Sants offered to
all \\
ho followed their devotional
dis-
was emphatically and exclusively interior, at least as preached by the more significant of the Sants. The objective was a permanent stilling of all emotion and all conflict, peace in an eternal equipoise which could be achieved by the devout Sant while cipline.
still
This discipline
living out his present existence.'^
From
this brief
by the Sants
summary
it
in their religious
will
be evident that the message preached
songs
l)ears
obvious resemblances to other
North Indian experience. It is easy to see why they should have been confused with contemporary V'aishnava bhaktas, for both share the same uncompromising insistence on devotion as the way of liberation. I he connection is, moreover, a legitimate one to the traditions familiar in the
extent that the Sant tradition plainly derived fundamental features of
doctrine from \ aishnava belief.
its
I
he Sant emphasis on interiority
points to the other principal source of
Nath panth,
its
belief
and
1
practice.
his
was
contemporary representative of the ancient tantric tradition. Sufi influence may also have contributed to the development of Sant doctrine, though if this is indeed the case its results are much harder to detect in the terminology of the Sant than features which derive from V’aishnava and Nath sources. the
Of
a
these three contributors to Sant doctrine the least familiar
doubtedly the Nath tradition.
Today
it
survives as a fading
is
un-
memory
acknow ledged leaders and dedicated practitioners of its yogic theory. During the time of (iuru N'anak, however, it commanded a considerable influence in the Punjab and North India generally. Although its origins remain unclear there can be no doubt that they relate intimately to Shaivite teachings and to tantric Buddhism. I he word iiath means “master” and the Adindth or “Primal Nath” was identified as Shiva. In addition to the Adinath there were believed to exist nine other Naths, master yogis w ho had attained immortality through the practice of hatha-yoga and who were supposed rather than as an active system with
to be living far
was, by
back
common
in the
I
limalayas.
Of these
nine the principal figure
consent, the semi-legendary Ciorakhnath to
adherents of the Nath tradition
owed
whom
all
allegiance. Belief in the nine im-
mortal Naths’is obviously connected in some
way with
the eighty-four
O/^IC/S'S
OF THE SIKH TRADITIOS
immortal Sitldhas of tantric Biiddliism. In Sikh tradition the two terms,
Nath and Siddha, attaching to the
are used interchangeably with a strong preference
latter.
Adherents of the Nath tradition were commonly known as Kanphat or “split-ear” yogis, a name vv hich derives from their practice of wearing large ear-rings.
I
heir direct influence
on the educated seems
been limited, but amongst the people
manded
to
large they evidently
at
have
com-
respect for their austerities and aroused considerable dread for
the magical powers which they were believed to possess. attributed to Kabir are shot through with
I'he
Nath concepts and termi-
nology, clearly demonstrating the extent of their influence on representative of the Sant tradition,
if
a
major
work of a Muslim name)
these songs are the
single person called Kabir that person (regardless of his
must surely have had
songs
close personal connections with the Naths. If they
and evolved products of a Kabirian was presumably subjected to a strong Nath
are to be regarded as the composite tradition the tradition itself
influence.
W hatever
the root,
Nath
influences are plainly evident in the
works attributed to Kabir and in other products of the Sant tradition. Fhev are also present in the works of (iuru Nanak. Fhe impact of this Nath influence can presumal)ly be observed in the characteristic Sant stress on the irrelevance of caste status as a means to deliverance, the folly of sacred languages and scriptures, the futility of temple worship and pilgrimage, and their general stress on interior devotion. Such features are the essence of Sant belief. Their starting point is a concept of Ciod w hich insists upon his wholly formless quality. He is nirgiina, as opposed to \\\^sagiina belief w hich envisages physical incarnations and accepts visible representations in the form of idols. For the Sants all such exterior forms are misguided, as are the associated practices of temple worship and outward ceremony. CJod is to be found within each human heart or spirit, and there alone can one practice the loving devotion w hich will ultimately lead to union with the divine and thus to the eternal bliss of deliverance. I he inner path which the devout Sant must follow is not an easy one, but its rew ard is sure and it is one which can be secured in this present existence. The reward is
the bliss of total peace in mystical union.
sahaj, a
word w hich
leads us back to the
Fhis
is
the condition of
Naths and beyond them
to
the earlier tradition of tantric Buddhism.
on Nath antecedents should not imply that the Sants were mere imitators of Nath belief and practice. Such a conclusion would I'his stress
ORICISS OF THE S/KII TRADETIOS from the truth, for the Sants w ere generally strong critics of the Naths, and their doctrine offers much more than Nath borrow ings. Sahaj^ they insist, is not to be attained through the practice of hatha-yoga. It is to be attained through inward devotion and the practice of meditation. In looking for the closest relatives of the Sants one must still acknowledge them to be the \ aishnava bhaktas, for the essence of Sant be
far
belief remains loving devotion to a personal deitv.
must be repeatedlv stressed
I
he points w hich
are that the object of their devotion
strictlv
formless (iod, and that the actual practice of devotion
inward
discipline.**^
An
outline of (iuru Nanak’s system will
show how
is
closely
is
a
a strictly
its
fun-
damental features match the insistent emphases of the Sant, d'he teach-
Nanak
ings of
are easily accessible.
Although
important question of spiritual deliverance
is
his
approach to the
all-
not that of a systematic
theologian there can be no doubt that a developed and integrated system
mind and that it informs the many hvmns w hich he d he hvmns were recorded in the .\di Granth half a centurv
was present has
left,
in his
after his death
and
it
appears that (iuru Arjan,
in
(iranth, had access to an earlier collection compiled I
he source
system
lies
is
behind the hymns which
mav have
case of (iuru
by the
third (iuru."**
thus a sound one and exegesis will reveal that it
exercised a
a
coherent
preserves.
was noted that Sufi doclimited intluence on its development. In the
In the earlier brief survev of Sant origins
trine
compiling the Adi
it
Nanak one commonly encounters
the insistent claim that
owed much to Islam and specifically to the Sufis. As was also indicated, some writers have carried this theorv to the point of claiming he
example of conscious svncretism, one w hich deliberatelv tried to blend Hindu and .Muslim ideals, d hese interpretations v\’ere criticized in Gunl Sdnak and the Sikh Religion w here it w as suggested that whatever .Muslim influence might be detected in Nanak’s work no aspect of that influence could claim fundamental sigfhis denial of the svncretism thesis was itself attacked and nificance. it must be acknowledged that were the book to be rewritten some marginal qualifications would be needed. The substance of the denial has, however, been confirmed by a much more thorough analysis of the issue, one which approaches it by way of the Persian loan-words which appear in the .\di (iranth. 1 he analysis is the work of Professor (Christopher Shackle and the publication of his finds seems clearly to that his religion can be treated as an
have demolished the old syncretic claim.
()RI(;i\S
OF THE SIKH TK ADIT I OS
Nanak viewed both
(uiru
manner. In
eallv Sant
the
Hindu
their eonventional
tradition
and Islam
in a typi-
forms both offered systems of
and practiee vvhieh largely relied on external authorities and outw ard response. As sueh both were to be condemned. Only those who perceived the inner reality of truth could achieve deliverance, and this belief
end could be attained regardless of whether one were a Hindu or a Muslim, d hose w ho followed this inner path are the “true” Hindu and the “true” Muslim as opposed to the “false” believers w ho continue to put their trust in ritual and pilgrimage, temple and mosque, brahman and mullah, Shastras and Qur’an. As Professor Shackle demonstrates, the Islamic loan-words which appear in the works of (kiru Nanak (as elsewhere in the Adi (iranth) are most famous example occurs in a shalok from Vdr Mdjh. Make mercy vour mosque and devotion vour prayer mat,
lim. d'he
righteousness vour Qur’an;
Meekness vour circumcising, goodness your for thus the true
Muslim expresses
Make good works vour Ka‘bah,
fasting,
his faith.
take truth as vour pir
compassion vour creed and vour prayer. Let service to
and This
is
God
the classic
insistent interior
God
be the beads w hich you
will exalt
you
to glory.
Guru Nanak approach,
emphasis and of
particular instance
it
tell
its
typical both in terms of
striking use of imagery.
its
In this
Muslim and in makes of Muslim
supplies a definition of the “true”
w hich Nanak typically concepts. I he same contrast between the true believer and the false explains the conjoining of Hindu and Muslim names for God, and when Muslim names for God are elsew here introduced it is commonly for the so doing
it
illustrates the use
poetic purpose of achieving assonance or alliteration.
The
terms certainly does not guarantee an Islamic content.
use of Islamic
Having noted
Shackle adds (pp. 93-94): “Nor is this awareness indeed evidenced by this and other uses of Islamic
this feature Professor
of Islam, which
loan-words
is
in the A[di] (i[ranth], to
be confused with any direct influ-
ence from Islam, as suggested by the proponents of the syncretic or eclectic origin of Sikhism, necessarily
since the primary text has so
little
on the
to offer
Professor Shackle concludes his analysis fact that the
basis of secondary sources,
them by wav of support.” by draw ing attention to the
Adi (iranth borrowings from Persian concentrate much
ORIGIXS OF THE SIKH ERA Dili OX more heavily on images of
royal authority than on the doctrines and
practice of Islam (pp. 94-96). in the
w orks of (iuru Nanak
1
le
adds that the relevant features present
are also to be found in those attributed
to Kabir.
This analysis of Adi (iranth terminology should
put aside, once and for a synthesis
of
all,
lindu and
I
the mistaken notion that (iuru
Muslim
of belief draws
little
controversy
now becoming
is
make
ideals.
I
it
possible to
Nanak
offers
he view that the Sant pattern
of significance from Islam also bears repeating, d'he sterile,
deserving to be briefly examined
dominates popular representations of the teachings of (iuru Nanak. For journalists covering the recent troubles in the
only because
it
still
seems to have been a mandatory introduction they might say about Nanak and his influence. Punjab
I
it
for
whatever
laving thus discarded a mistaken interpretation of the teachings of
(iuru
Nanak
it
is
possible to proceed to a
summary
of what they ac-
Adi (iranth itself begins, with Nanak’s doctrine of (iod. .Many terms, draw n from a variety of traditions, are used to designate the (iod of Nanak’s theology, each of them offering a facet of his total understanding. One which has achieved particular [^Kipularitv is .\kal lAirakh, the “Person beyond l ime” or “Fternal One.” .\s one might expect from the Sant background of Nanak’s thought .\kal Purakh is understood as Xirankdr, “the One without Form,” and repeated emphasis is laid on the ineffable quality of his being. I his does not mean, however, that .\kal Purakh is inaccessible to the understanding of men and women or that he is beyond the reach of their affections. .\kal Purakh has in fact manifested himself in the world w hich he has created, and they w hose eves are opened to spiritual understanding will perceive him immanent in all creation. 4 hus perceiving him they receive the means to approach him and so to appropriate the freedom and eternal bliss which is proffered for all to grasp. .Mankind, however, is congenitally blind and for most people the vision of the divine, ever present around them, remains forever concealed. that inner faculty which comI he problem lies in the human monly we call our “heart” but which is better understood as a complex comprising heart, mind and spirit. W ithin the man eyil exercises its yicious way and, seduced by the passions which it generates, most are blind to the spiritual reality which lies within and about them. Drixen by their eyil impulses they behaxe in a manner w hich, in accordance tually contain, beginning, as the
^
with the law of karma, earns appropriate penalties. For such people the
ORK^IWS OF THE SIKH TRADITIOX
result can only
be the round of death and rebirth, the endless sequence
which extends suffering through
all
eternity, d he
haumai or self-centered concern for
is
sensual and the selfish.
As long
can be no hope of escape. \\ hat,
then,
is
as the
all
man
fundamental problem
that attracts the proud, the is
in the grip
of haumai there
The endless round must continue.
the solution?
I
he solution, according to Nanak,
is
the
nam or the “divine Name.” le v\ ho learns how to appropriate the nam w ill be freed from the chains w hich bind him to the wheel of transmigration. The term nam, as used by Nanak and elsewhere in Sant I
literature,
summary
a
is
expression for the whole nature of (iod and
that constitutes his being.
It
is,
all
to use another favored expression, sat
commonly encounters the combination satinam or “ rue Name.” Anything that may be affirmed concerning Akal Furakh constitutes an aspect of the divine Name, and a sufficient understanding or “truth” and one I
of the divine
How
is
confers?
Furakh to \\
all
is
who
provides the essential means to deliverance.
the divine
revealed and it
Name
a
Name
what manner is it secure the reward which
to be appropriated? In
w hat must a person do in order to knowledge of the Name can be attained because
God
of grace, speaking the
Word
.Akal
of divine understanding
are prepared to shed their haumai and listen in humility, d he
ord {hbad)
is
the message inscribed in creation, and the mystical “voice”
whereby it is “spoken” is the eternal Guru. Akal Furakh is himself the eternal Guru, speaking through the creation which constitutes his visible form. The message thus spoken is the \\ ord which reveals the divine Name. It is a simple message. Look around you and look within. Both around and within you will perceive the divine Order {hukarn), a harmony expressed in the physical and psychical creation w hieh reflects the divine harmony of Akal Furakh himself. In order to secure liberation one must attune one’s whole life to that harmony expressed as the divine Name. This purpose one achieves bv means of regular, disciplined practice of nam simaran or “remembrance of the
Name.”
.A
simple version of this technique consists of repeating
w hich summarizes the meaning of the di\ ine Name and thus of .Akal Furakh himself (a w ord such as satinam or the later term Vdhiguru). d he more sophisticated version is a technique of meditation which inw ardly reflects upon the meaning of the divine Name, with the intention of bringing one’s w hole being into harmony with the divine harmony of the Name. Kirtan (the singing of appropriate hymns) a
word
or expression
ORICIXS OF THE
is
another form of
SI FI I
TRADITIOS
fidni siniaran, for in this
manner
also
devout believers
can attune themselves to the divine.
The discipline ultimate rew ard
who
for those
is
w
not an easv task, nor can one expect to secure the
ithout lengthv striving.
sincerelv seek
it.
All
who
It
is,
however,
a
sure reward
follow the discipline of
udm
simarau with devout persistence will progressively ascend to levels of spiritual
experience which thev alone can comprehend.
mvstical union in the eternal bliss of total serenity.
I
I
hus
is
he end
is
the cvcle
Thus does one merge in the divine Name. Those w ho know the works attributed to Kabir and other Sants will find in this brief summarv of Nanak’s theologv much that is familiar and nothing that conflicts w ith anv significant feature of Sant doctrine. In Nanak, as in Kabir, there is the same rejection of exterior forms, the same insistence on the need for inward devotion and its sufficiencv as the sole means of liberation.’^ We return to the problem which has recurred throughout this survev of the life and teachings of (iuru Nanak. Must we conclude that Nanak was a Sant? d he answer will depend on the tone and color of the question. If it is a strictlv neutral question of antecedents and influences the answer must be in the affirmative. Because he represents the essential concerns
of transmigration broken.
of the Sants dition.
If,
we
are
bound
Nanak w ithin
to locate Ciuru
however, the question implies
a
the Sant tra-
lack of originalitv
on the
Nanak the answer must be an emphatic negative. Plainlv there much that is profoundlv original in the hvmns which we find re-
part of is
corded under his distinctive svmbol
Adi (iranth.^^ d'here is in them an integrated and coherent svstem which no other Sant has produced; there is a claritv which no other Sant has equaled; and there is a beautv which no other Sant has matched, d here is, moreover, the question of permanence. The fact that Nanak appointed a successor to follow him is scarcelv unique, but nothing in the Sant experience can compare to the Panth which was eventually to emerge from that decision.
31
in the
3
Four Centuries of Sikh History
Q
L R\
HYING Sikh
history since Nanak’s death might
would indeed be easy
seem
to be an
were possible to agree on the facts which should be presented, and upon their interpretation. In the case of Guru Nanak there should be no serious problem, at least as far as the facts are concerned. \\ hereas knowledge of his actual life must necessarily remain limited his teachings are readily accessible. As we easy task.
It
have already seen there lationship of
Nanak
is
to the
a
if it
continuing controversy regarding the
Sant tradition, but
at least there
re-
should be
argument concerning either the paucity of biographical detail or the abundance of authentic compositions. Moving beyond his death in 1539, however, the task becomes much more complicated. Serious problems arise throughout the survey and any general interpretation that may be offered is bound to be disputed.' One of these problems w as indicated earlier w hen dealing with the life and teachings of Nanak. I trod then on sacred ground and must continue to do so. Fhis means that an attitude of sympathetic caution must be sustained in order to hold the attention of a representative aulittle
FOUR CESTURIES OE SIKH HISTORY Fhe subject concerns the sul)stance of a living faith, one which generates strong devotion and a fierce lovaltv. It is not an area to be entered carelessly or with anv hint of disrespect. A second problem arises, as one might expect, from the restricted dience.
quantitv of source material, notablv the nineteenth centurv.
fhis
is
\\
ith
regard to the period preceding
scarcely an issue peculiar to Sikh his-
Other regional historians of India typically encounter the same problem, particularlv if thev must move awav from official sources in order to obtain the material which thev need. In the case of the Sikhs it has been reasonable argued that those w ho were making historv during the eighteenth centurv were unaccustomed by tradition to recording fhe increasinglv disturbed conit and far too busv to bother anvwav. ditions which encouraged this response would also have been responsible for the destruction of some portion of the small legacv. W hatever the reason, it is immediately obvious that sources which predate the nineteenth centurv are restricted in quantitv and in coverage. A time torv.
of relative plentv
is
onlv reached with the nineteenth-centurv source
materials (both Sikh and British).
fhe increase tainlv helps, but
in it
supplv which comes with the modern period cer-
does not solve
all
problems relating to sources.
\\
hether
these sources be scantv or profuse, whether of the sixteenth century or the late
tv\
entieth, there remains the general
pret those sources.
problem of how
to inter-
This has already been noted with regard to the janam-
sakhis, the traditional narratives of the
life
seems possible, from the whollv credulous
of Nanak.
Any
response
to the totallv sceptical. In
practice the significant debate sets the cautiously traditional scholar against
those trained in
modern
W estern
historiography, d'he difference of ap-
one to which we shall return. Moving from janam-sakhi interpretation into eighteenth-centurv materials a similar range of differing views is encountered with regard to proach
is
the rahit-namas and the gur-bilas literature.^
fhe earlv rahit-namas,
which record various versions of the Khalsa code of conduct, invariable purport to date from the time of (iuru (iobind Singh (1675-1708) or at least to report words which the author claims to have heard directlv from his lips. 1 hese claims mav be believed or thev mav be questioned, fhe response which each of us chooses must make a substantial difference both to the facts w hich we accept and to the interpretations which we derive from them. The issue raised by the rahit-namas recurs when we turn to the gur-
33
FOUR CFSTURIES OF SIKH HISTORY l)ilas literature,
stirring aeeounts of the
mighty deeds of the Ciurus.
I
hese
works tvpieallv eoneentrate on the life and mission of the tenth (Juru, exalting both his w isdom and his steadfast heroism. In thus deseribing the gur-bilas literature one ean immediately sense the presence of the first problem. It is yery easy to sound critical or condescending, and if this be the result of such descriptions they can be yery damaging indeed. ^ et the point must be made and attention must be insistently draw n to the way in which these narratiyes are actually used. I'oo often they are cited as proof-texts for a cherished tradition without adequate scrutiny of their actual dates or of the purpose w hich they were intended to serye. F.yen those w ho are free from prior commitment or preconeeiyed interpretation can fall into the trap. An example of that trap is provided by Koer Singh’s (iur-hilds PdtasdhJ 10, a work which claims to be eighteenth-century in origin. (Iur-hilds PdtasdhJ 10 evidently
belongs to the early nineteenth century and
it
serves a patently inspi-
rational purpose. I
shall return to these
codes and narratives in chapters
5
and
6.
I'hey
are cited here as important examples of the available sources for the
middle period of Sikh history and of the differing responses which such materials can is
elicit.
It
should also be noted that this particular problem
not confined to Punjabi sources: Macauliffe’s enormously influential
The Sikh Religion must be intimately associated with the traditional ap-
proach, both with regard to
unw ar\’
its
source-material value and as a trap for
researchers. Published in 1909 this six-volume study' relies largely
on traditional works, selectively organizing their material in a manner w hich answers the needs of consistency rather than those of critical scholarship. Macauliffe’s work is justly renow ned, but it should not be used as
a reliable
source except for the student of the Singh Sabha re-
form movement. The Singh Sabha moxement developed within the Sikh
community
late in the
nineteenth century, extending
its
active period
and education into the early decades of the twentieth. Maeauliffe drew much of his inspiration, and its ideals are faith-
ot publishing
From
it
fully reflected in his
work.
Macauliffe’s reputation leads to vet another of the serious problems
confronting the student of Sikh history, one w hich was implied in
my
problem can be described as the burden of tradition. I here are in fact two dominant traditions not merely the variety which so readily springs to mind; and, as we shall see, they produce two a)nflicting types of interpretation. brief treatment of the sources issue. Fhis final
FOUR CESrURlES OE SIKH HISTORY I
he obvious variety
is
that
w hich preserves and presents
a traditional
view of Sikh historv from within the Fanth. d'his is indeed a major aspeet of the problem. Scholars who have been nurtured in the Sikh tradition
\\ill
naturallv find
it
verv difficult to comprehend with svm-
pathy findings or interpretations
\\
hich seriously contest a traditional
one which esscntiallv derives from the Singh Sabha reinterpretation of Sikh historv. As such it draws extensivelv on traditional sources, interpreting them in an essentially conservative mode, and anv approach to Sikh historv which seems to view, d'his
viev\-,
should be noted,
it
is
be calling either the sources or the reinterpretation into question will
fhe historiography and hermeneutics generated during the Singh Sabha period are still dominant and this inevitablv means that a vigorous contest avxaits the historian or theologian who be stronglv resisted,
challenges This
is
its
approach.
one of the traditions
\\
hich presents a problem, d he other
is
W estern
academic tradition with its strongly skeptical tone. Proponents of the first view assume that they have taken the measure of this one, for those w ho affirm the Singh Sabha approach will usually
the
claim to have absorbed the benefits offered by
while discarding
its
W estern
historiographv
excessive rationalism and rather absurd rigor.
How
can one possiblv hope to understand the essence of the Sikh tradition
one lacks a svmpathetic willingness to accept its definitions.^ And whv should one refuse to acknowledge all but the definitively proven? The field must remain arid if this be the theory and the stvle. fhe rebuke is a just one, for there can be no doubt that rigor and scepticism can be overdone, d hat admission does not mean, however, that the principles of rigor and scepticism should be abandoned. \\ hat is to be expected is that here, as in the scholarlv studv of anv religious tradition, both approaches will continue to be evident and that a meaif
sure of scholarlv tension
is
thus bound to persist.
not involve fierce dispute or denunciation. a
On
Phis tension need
the contrarv,
it
can be
generallv creative tension and the proponents of either approach are
exceedinglv foolish
if
thev refuse to listen svmpatheticallv to the other.
Although the debate between the two sides affects many of the issues raised bv a study of Sikh history one such issue commands a particular importance, d his is the “transformation of Sikhism” theme, d'he question of whv a tradition built on Nanak’s interior practice of tidm itmaran (meditation on the divine Name) should have become a militant communitv and proclaimed its identitv by means of prominentlv-dis-
FOUR CFM'LRIFS OF SIKH HISTORY plavcd exterior symbols.
1
low, in Khushwant Singh’s words, do
we
explain the transition “from the pacifist Sikh to the militant Khalsa?”"^
There are aetuallv two distinct issues involved tion.
First,
why
in this general
ques-
did a religion of interiority assume such an overtly
exterior identity? Secondly,
why
did the Fanth adopt a militant phi-
losophy and develop an appropriately militant tradition? d'he two issues deserve to be treated together, for they are intimately related in practice
and the answers which are given dictate the response to the other.
question with
a significance
to
one
set of
questions must largely
Fogether they raise
extending
far
fundamental
a
beyond the bounds of
aca-
demic debate. Differing answers to the fundamental question retleet differing responses to major issues which continue to agitate the Panth. For some the fundamental question
is
posed
in the following form:
“Should the transformation have occurred?” Thus expressed the question commonly implies a negative answer, an answer which many Indians (including port.
on
I
his
many
Punjabi Hindus) are strongly inclined to sup-
he radical argument
own and
mns
as follows:
Nanak conferred
way
succeeding generations by preaching the
erance through the practice of nam simaraii; this
great benefit
of deliv-
where (iurmat began and that is how it should have "remained;’ the later Gurus may w ell have been sorely provoked by Mughal authorities, but the decision to arm their followers and to redirect their teachings along militant lines w as wholly regrettable. Religion should follow the path of peace, not is
the path of war.
A
modified version of the argument accepts that there
may have been
reasons for the creation of the militant Khalsa order while firmly rejecting the claim that this should necessarily have transformed the
as a
w
hole.
1
he Khalsa should exist as
the larger Panth, to be joined by those
a
voluntary association
w ho
find value in
but certainly not to exclude from the Panth others their loyalties to the teachings enunciated
cessors.
I
he divine
the essence of
Name
Gurmat.
I
who
by Nanak and
its
Panth
w ithin
discipline
prefer to limit his early suc-
Nanak should be regarded as he Khalsa mode should be treated as a strictly teachings of
voluntary extra.
Fhe modified version of the argument raises the difficult question of how one should regard those w ho affirm veneration for Nanak w hile rejecting the discipline of the Khalsa.
(Chapter precisely.
I
shall return to this
question in
w hen seeking to define the nature of Sikh identity more At this point it can be acknowledged that Khalsa doctrine is
5,
FOUR CEXTURIES OE SIKH HIS'EORY strongly predominant
w
ithin the
Khalsa tradition the question of historian
who
Panth and that
its
for
all
w ho aeeept the
necessity simply does not arise.
stands outside the Panth can likewise (for
somewhat
I
he
dif-
no doubt that a significant change did remodel the Panth and the releyant question must therefore be why this happened. Four distinct answers hax e been giyen to this question, two of which should be scrutinized before w e finally proceed to our summary suryey of Sikh history. I he other two theories are first that militancy was for the defense of the Panth; and second, a theory which can be summarily discarded, that credit for Sikh militancy must be bestow ed on the nineteenth-century British rulers of the recent-annexed Punjab and on elite groups w ithin the Panth itself w ho subsequently turned the same traferent reasons) set the question aside, d here can be
dition against
w ere
its
creators, .\ccording to this latter interpretation there
seyeral Sikh identities ayailable during the period immediately fol-
lowing the 1849 annexation and one such identity (the militant Khalsa yersion)
own
was
v
igorously promoted by the British in order to serve their
same identity w as accepted by the stronger of the Singh Sabha leaders and became the focus of their reforming military purposes, d he
activities late in the nineteenth century. .\
brief
summary
of this theory necessarily does
it
serious injustice
and before passing on it should be acknowledged that it incorporates important insights for discussion later in this chapter.^’ In general terms, however, it can be rejected. It focuses much too narrowly on the condition of the Panth during the mid-nineteenth century, failing to take
adequate account of the
rise to
dominance of the Khalsa
ideal
during
the course of the eighteenth century.
fhe second answer which may be early Sikh tradition,
Panth. Because
is
briefly covered,
that Sikh militancy
Nanak and
was
one with roots
in
for the defense of the
his successors attracted
an expanding group
Mughal authorities in Delhi and Lahore became alarmed. Kgged on by bigoted Muslims and a few malicious Hindus they began to take steps to suppress the movement. Confronted by this threat the later Gurus had little choice but to arm their followers or face extinc-
of followers the
tion.
I'hey chose the former alternative, thereby converting the Panth
group of unarmed dev otees into one w hich was able to defend itself. Phis alone proved to be inadequate and eventually the firm discipline of the, Khalsa had to be imposed on men who, in times of real danger, proved to be less than totally loyal. from
a
FOUR CFXTi'RIFS OF SIKH HISTORY
I
his
second theory can be treated summarily, not because
to be rejected but because
theories. Neither of the
answer
it
is
two remaining
theories accepts
to the transformation question, but they
a significant feature
deseryes
generally incorporated in the remaining
of the total explanation. For both
swer,
it
it
is
a
it
as a sufficient
do accept
that
it is
part
subordinate aspect of the an-
which should not be regarded
as the core
explanation. I
here remain tw o conflicting interpretations, one of which has long
dominated Sikh historiography and still shows little sign of weakening. I'his theory affirms that the Panth was remolded by Guru Gobind Singh in order to defend the truth and secure justice for the oppressed. It begins with the insistent claim that the militarizing of the Panth by the sixth (itirii and the subsequent creation of the Khalsa by the tenth were strictly in accord with Nanak’s own intention. For many the classic statement of this claim
CAinningham:
“It
is
to be
was reseryed
found
for
in the stirring
Sanak
words of Joseph
to perceive the true principles
of reform, and to lay those broad foundations which enabled his successor Goh'uid to fire the ality,
and
minds of
his
countrymen w
ith a
new
to give practical effect to the doctrine that the lowest
with the highest
nationis
equal
in race as in creed, in political rights as in religious
hopes.
w as,
words, Nanak’s doctrine of equality which supplied the essential basis for later developments. Nanak had signaled the deIt
in other
words of explicit denunciation. Ciobind Singh sealed his intention by requiring all Khalsa entrants to drink the same water of initiation from a common cup. Nanak had proclaimed that deliverance from suffering and transmigration is available to all, regardless of how lowly or oppressed an individual might be. His successors, and notably (iuru Gobind Singh, translated this doctrine into militant defence of the rights of all men. In the face of tyranny justice can be defended and maintained only by the use of force. If all other methods of redress have failed it is legitimate to draw the sw ord in the defense of righteousness. I he obligation to perform this duty if need should arise must be accepted by every loyal follower of the (iuru.*^ Many see this summons to a new order and discipline as a sudden change, one which the tenth (iuru dramatically thrust upon a startled Panth when he announced the inauguration of the Khalsa on the Baisakhi Day of 1699. The execution of his father by order of the F.mperor Aurangzeb had convinced the youthful (iuru that his followers struction of caste with his
FOUR CESTURIES OE SIKH HISTORY must learn to defend justice \\ ith the sword, and that they must adopt an outw ard identity of a kind w hich would make craven concealment impossible. The actions of the sixth (iuru, Hargobind, are recognized as a significant foreshadow ing of the change which w as to come, but the actual transformation belongs to the time of (iuru (iobind Singh
and
founding of the Khalsa in 1699. This was the dominant view of the Singh Sabha period and specificallv to the
it
has
been restated bv Khushwant Singh in his w idely read A Histo/y of the Sikhs.'^ More recently Jagjit Singh has developed this interpretation into a detailed
theory of revolution, one w hich maintains that the period of
w hich they led as sustained ideal. “The Sikh
the (iurus must be viewed as a whole and the Panth the progressive development of a single
movement w as an organic growth of of
life.
to use
I
it
the Sikh religion or the Sikh view
he founding of the Sikh Eauth outside the caste society as the base for
in
order
combatting the hierarchical set-up of the caste
order, and the creation of the Khalsa for capturing the state in the interests of the
poor and the suppressed, were only
a projection,
on the
military and political plane, of the egalitarian approach of the Sikh religious thesis.”'^’
The essence and that they least
all
common
feature of these related interpretations
attribute the historical
during the
first
development of the Sikh Panth
three centuries of
its
is
(at
existence) to the explicit in-
tention of the (iiirus. d hev thus represent a strictly ideological view,
d he (iiirus envisaged
a particular
pattern for the Panth which they cre-
and the actual form which it assumed corresponded to their intention. It accordingly developed as a militant order with a particular range of external symbols because that is what the fundamental intention required. Guru (iobind Singh may have been responsible for engendering the spirit and proclaiming the actual form w hich the Khalsa ated,
was to assume, but he did so only because a basic egalitarian principle had already been enunciated by (iuru Nanak. d he intervening (iurus likew ise contributed to the same process, each advancing the same basic ideal and formulating practical responses as circumstances demanded. This interpretation has been contested on the grounds that it stresses intention and ideology much too strongly, d here has been no suggestion that the (mrus lacked clear objectives, nor that they were ineffectual in the pursuit of their declared purposes, d he point w hich this fourth interpretation seeks to
elsewhere thrown
much
make
's
that the weight of
emphasis
is
too strongly on preconceived intention as an
FOUR CESTl'RIES OE SIKH HISTORY explanation for subsecjiient developments; and that insultieient allow-
anee
is
made
for
environmental faetors. Fhese factors include the social
eonstitutenev of the developing Panth, the economic context within which it
evolved, and the influence of contemporary events such as those pro-
duced
l)v local political rivalries
The claim embodied
in this
and foreign invasion. fourth interpretation was advanced in
Ehe Evolution of the Sikh Community,
first
published in 1975 but building
on insights supplied bv earlier writers." d his book (pp. 4-5) claimed as one of its purposes “to seek a more radical concept of development, one which will express a much more intricate synthesis of a much wider range of historical and sociological phenomena.” The traditional explanation is, it suggested, much too simple and its use of sources much too narrow! V selective. It should perhaps be added that the interpretation partlv derives from a suspicion of manv wide-ranging explanations based on the preconceived intentions of individuals, however influential those individuals mav be. W ithin a narrow and immediate range such explanations can be wholly plausible, but not for a movement as complex and long-lived as the Sikh Panth. The fourth interpretation thus claims that the progressive development of the Panth must be explained not merelv in terms of purposeful intention but also (and in significant measure) bv the influence of the social, economic and historical environment. Phis specificallv includes such major features as the militant texture of the later Panth and the growth of the Rahit (the distinctive code of conduct associated with membership of the Khalsa). " As such it necessarilv applies to the modern Panth as much as to the earlier, seeking to explain continuing controversies as well as agreed orthodox v. l o those nurtured on Western historiographv this fourth interpretation mav well sound like an elementarv statement of the received wisdom which, in general terms, all academic historians accept. If so it may simplv reflect our own subjection to a particular tradition. The interpretation offered bv The Evolution of the Sikh Community has been stronglv attacked from within the Panth, vv ith criticism focusing on two major features of the general theorv. The first is its treatment of caste within the Panth. fhe second is its suggestion that the growth of militancv should be related to the traditions of a particular group within the Panth, namelv those of the Jat caste. " Some attention has also been paid to
its
theorv that the doctrine of the Ciuru’s mvstical presence within
both Panth and Granth (communitv and sacred scripture) should be
40
FOUR CEXrURIES OF SIKH HISTORY regarded as
a belief
developed over time rather than as the result of
a
pronouncement bv (Juru (iobind Singh. Its claim (pp. 50-53) that the Rahit should likewise be viewed as a product evolved (and still evolving) over time seems so far to have escaped serious attack. Because the views expressed in Fhe Evolutioti of the Sikh Community are my ow n, and because continue to hold those views, the brief summarv of Sikh historv which now follows will inevitably be informed bv the fourth interpretation noted above. This means that the summarv I
will incorporate a particular bias.
nor
is
there anv suggestion that
No
apologv
k'or the
offered for this feature,
regard the bias as misplaced.
I
however, important to remember that at certain crucial points,
is
it
will represent a
dominant
traditional
It
is,
minoritv view
view one must
look elsewhere.
Before he died in 1539 CJuru
Nanak appointed
as his successor a dis-
bestowed on him the new name of Angad. Ciuru Angad was followed bv (iuru Amar Das, and he in turn bv his son-in-law Guru Ram Das.'^ Thereafter the succession was confined to the male line of the Sodhi familv descending from (mru Ram Das. His voungest son Arjan became th' fifth (iuru in 1581, and was followed
ciple called Lahina, having
in
turn bv his
own
son Hargobind in 1606. The succession was some-
times disputed, notably by Arjan’s elder brother Prithi Cihand, but an
acknowledged 'succession was sustained and it seems that none of the rival contenders was able to detach a significant segment of the growing Panth.
(iuru .Krjan carries us into the seventeenth centurv and into a period
Throughout the sixteenth centurv the Panth had continued to grow in numbers and to develop in terms of organization and definition. The earlv Gurus were obviouslv faithful to the original message of Nanak, repeating in endless varietv his doctrine of release from the transmigratorv cvcle through the practice of nam simaran or meditation on the di\’ine Name. As the numerical strength of the Panth increased administrative features which had been unnecessarv during the time of the first (iuru inevitably became a part of its regular life. It is still verv difficult to determine in detail exactlv what was happening during this sixteenth-centurv period, but the outlines seem clear and thev confirm the reasonable expectation that the Nanakpanth was developing patterns and procedures, customs and rituals. It was (to use (iantwell Smith’s term) crvstallizing. To some extent the principal features of this phase might be regarded of significant change for the Panth.
41
FOUR CFM'i'RIFS OF as an implicit denial of a
Nanak had
teachings.
SIK/I
HISTORY
fundamental feature of (iuru Nanak’s
laid the characteristic
own
Sant emphasis on the fu-
of such external observances as temple-worship and pilgrimage,
tility
and of blind
Amar
trust in the efficacy of sacred scriptures,
Das, evidently
and
for pilgrims
it
made
his
ow n
I
he third Guru,
village of Cioindval a destination
appears that he also gathered the materials which
form the nucleus of the Adi (iranth. Guru Ram Das excavated the pool know n as Amritsar, and this and other sites became places of pilgrimage for devout members of the Panth. d o perform kJrtan (the
w ere
to
congregational singing of hymns) Sikhs assembled in dharam-salas and these buildings began to acquire the ritual connotations sociate
w
There
the
ith
gurdw
maturing community
is
bound
cating in institutional form
The
original message.
sacred all
ham
if
many
A
grow ing and
shape and definition,
repli-
of the ideals which constituted the
role of the (iuru, the liberating
and the
were fundamental features of that
ceived by the early Sikhs. prised
to acquire
(the utterances of the (iurus),
believers
as-
ara (the successor of the dharam-sala).
nothing surprising about such developments.
is
which we
This being the case
spiritual equality of
original
we
induence of the
message
as re-
can scarcely be sur-
the process of crystallization should produce appropriate cus-
toms and
institutions.
W ith
them came
a
rudimentary organization
designed to maintain spiritual oversight of an expanding community
and
to receive the gifts offered to the
allegiance, (kiru
placed the
more
Amar Das
Guru
as
devout expressions of
apparently organized the mafijJ system which
under his deputies, and be know n as a masand. It
distant saiigats (congregations)
each individual appointed to a manji came to
was the duty of the masands to act as the (uiru’s vicars, guiding his growing Hock and collecting their offerings. The period of the fifth (iuru, Arjan, is important for two main reasons. The first is that it was (iuru Arjan who arranged for the .Adi (iranth to be recorded, conferring on the Panth a sacred scripture w hich was to acquire great symbolic power. The second is that Mughal interest and apprehension became evident during his time. I he precise cause and circumstances of the fifth (iuru’s death may still be obscure, but it occurred w hile he w as in .Mughal custody and it made him the first
Sikh martyr.
Mughal
had descended from .Afghanistan into India during the life-time of (iuru Nanak and during the next halfcentury the dynasty had established rule over most of northern India. Rabur, the
first in
the
line,
42
FOUR CESTURIFS OF SIKH HISTORY At first the Sikhs attracted little Mughal attention, but as their numbers grew they began to be noticed. According to the traditional Sikh view it was Mughal hostility and the need to protect the victims of Mughal oppression
\\
hich produced the
itarizing of the I
Panth. (iuru Arjan
largobind to carry arms, and
in
first
it is
significant is
move towards
the mil-
said to have advised his son
believed that following his accession
1606 Hargobind wore not one but two swords.
The
action
was sym-
one sword represented the (kiru’s continuing spiritual authority {pin) the other proclaimed a new ly-assumed temporal role {win). bolic. \\ hereas
d he three battles fought against Mughal forces during the time of Ciuru
may have been mere skirmishes, but an important decision had nevertheless been made and a major development initiated, fhe I
largobind
Panth was thereafter to be armed. The alternative explanation does not deny the Ciuru’s decision to take
up arms,
which is supported by strong evidence.'^ What it that Mughal hostility need not have been the only reain policy. I here were certainly Jats amongst the Guru’s
a tradition
does propose
son for the
is
shift
following and the rural location of the Panth’s principal centers suggest
predominance of later centuries was probably developing bv the time of the fifth and sixth Cjurus.’^ fhe jats are a people accustomed to bearing arms and to using them as a means of resolving disputes. If we are right in assuming that significant numbers were entering the Panth it obviously follows that a significant portion of the Panth’s constituency bore arms as a matter of course. d his need not mean that they had previously worn arms when appearing before the (iuru and it certainly does not mean that there had been a jat take-over of any kind. W hat it does mean is that the bearing of arms was already an established custom for many Sikhs. It was, moreover, a custom v\’hich would be unlikely to generate strong disapproval on the part of the dominant Khatri leadership, apart from those with a strong commitment to the traditional role of the religious teacher. Khatris (as their name and some distinguished examples indicate) are bv no means divorced from the use of arms. If this theory is correct it would mean that (juru Ilargobind’s change of policy was undertaken in the context of an existing tradition of arms-bearing, a tradition which largely derived from the attitudes and customs of a major component that the Jats’ numerical
of the Panth’s membership.
fhe same kind of problem recurs w hen we reach the end of the seventeenth century.
A
period of peace followed the skirmishes of the sixth
43
I
lOl'R CEM'LRIES OE SIKH HISTORY
time and under the seventh (iuru, Hari Rai (1644-61), the Panth
(Jiiru’s
attraeted
little
attention from anxious
Mughal
authorities.
I
he aeeession
of a minor ereated internal problems during the brief period of the child (iiiru
1
lari
Krishan (1661-64), but these were largely solved
was followed bv (iuru of (iiiru
l
l
egh Bahadur (1664-75). During the
when he
later years
egh* Bahadur, however, the Panth again attracted hostile
Km-
•Mughal attention, culminating with his execution bv order of the peror Aurangzeb. I
he beheading of Ciuru
l
egh Bahadur
historiograph V. .\lthough there are
two
in
1675
is
a
key point
two
the
Ibihit,
One
men
of
ith its
man-
tradition emphasizes the (iuru’s
sparrows had to be turned into hawks, that
and discipline should be introduced ers into
w
are not dissimilar and both relate to the crisis
caused bv his father’s execution. belief that
Sikh
different traditions concerning
the tenth Ciuru’s decision to inaugurate the Khalsa order
datorv
in
steel.
in
a
new baptism
order to convert his follow-
he alternative tradition focuses on the (iuru’s
conviction that his Sikhs,
having shrunk from recognition
at
legh
Bahadur’s execution, should never again be permitted to conceal their
two
supplement each other and together thev supplv the standard explanation for the founding of the Khalsa. I he actual event took place in 1699. Having dramaticallv introduced his new rite of sword-baptism {kharide dJ pdhul) the Guru promulgated the Rahit which all who accept initiation must promise to observe.'' .According to the traditional view' this single event sealed and confirmed both the militant character of the Panth and the substance of the code which its members were thereafter to follow Onlv one major addition was still to be made and this too resulted from an explicit command issued bv the tenth Guru. Shortlv before he died in 1708 (iuru Gobind Singh decreed that at his death the line of personal Ciurus should terminate. I he Guru would thereafter be mvstieallv present w ithin the sacred scripture and the corporate communitv. I he Guru Granth and Guru Panth w ould thus exercise the di\ ine authoritv of the Guru, and identity.'" I'he
traditions
.
all
issues concerning belief or practice should be referred to
guidance and (w hen necessarv) for
The tradition
a
must
persist.
Questions must
persist because the historical context of the Khalsa’s foundation
subsequent development tradition allow's.
The masands,
as
I
here
is
is,
we have
for
formal decision.
consistent, but doubts
is
them
and
eonsiderablv more complex than the simple for
example, the problem of the masands.
alreadv noted, were the Gurus’ representa-
44
A
FOUR CES FURIES OF tives, responsible for
SIR/I
HISTORY
shepherding scattered sangats (groups of diseiples
Many
or congregations) and for eollecting their offerings.
of the mas-
ands had apparently become arrogant and corrupt, prompting the tenth (iuru to suppress them.
own
the (iurii’s
A
portion of the Fanth was ev idently under
direct supervision
and
this [portion constituted his khalsa
being the w ord used for that part of
{khalsd
the direct control of
its
w hich already
under
is
commanding all loyal summoning them to join a khalsa
central authority).
Sikhs to abandon the masands he w as
domain which
a
‘‘
In
existed.
d his clear intention weakens the traditional stress on the militant purpose of the Khalsa inauguration, but
it
certainly does not destroy
it.
The true nature of the formalized Khalsa depends upon the Rahit and if (iuru Ciobind Singh did indeed promulgate the Rahit the traditional
command
interpretation
may
complexity
encountered and
is
still
general acceptance.
at this stage
sults that research will eventually
produce.
It is
here that real
no one can predict the I
re-
hat the (iuru did pro-
system of belief and behavior no one need doubt, d he problem concerns the nature of the new code which he personally enunciated, as opposed to those portions of the developed Rahit which evolved durmulgate
a
ing the period following his death.
A it
detailed discussion of the Rahit will be offered in chapter
can merely be noted that the evidence convincingly points to
Here
5.
a
period
of major development during the course of the eighteenth century. Even the institution of the “Five Ks,” that most famous feature of the Rahit,
cannot be
immune from
this scrutiny.
I
he Five Ks
{patlj
kakke or pafij
which every initiated member of the Khalsa must wear. Most prominent of the five is the kes or uncut hair, d he other four are the comb w hich is
kakdr) are the five items, each beginning with the letter “k,”
worn
in
the topknot of the uncut hair {kaiighd), the steel bangle {kard),
the sword or dagger {kirpdu), and the distinctive shorts {kachh). In the oldest manuscript of the earliest extant rahit-nama
(a
recorded version
no reference to the Five Ks as such, although there later version is abundant emphasis on the uncut hair and the sword. of the same rahit-nama introduces five items w hich loyal Sikhs must embrace and three of these {kachh, kirpdn and kes) figure in the Five Ks. Fhe other two, however, are hdtii (the sacred words of the scripture)
of the Rahit) there
is
and sddh sangat (the congregation
ol the laithlul).’'*
and other rahit-nama evidence seems plainly to point to of development during the course of the eighteenth century, d
his
45
a
period
a devel-
FOUR CFXTL RIFS OF SIKH HISTORY opment w hich to
it
One w
external events,
l)v
the presence of a
is
ithin the Panth.
through actual
much
w
reflects pressures operating
Panth or applied
d'wo such pressures should be briefly noted. substantial and highly active Jat constituency
The other
is
the experience of protracted warfare
of the century. Although
emergence of
ithin the
may be
it
difficult to trace the
no doubt that the Rahit
specific details there can be
was (and remains) an evolving tradition, and that some of its key tures derive from the eighteenth-century experience of the Panth.
W ith
fea-
regard to other aspects of the Panth’s eighteenth-century ex-
perience the traditional and the evolutionary interpretations reconverge. This
is
the heroic period of Sikh history and from
of bravery and endurance which
still
fire
the
it
emerge
traditions
modern Panth. During
the early decades of the century the Sikhs suffered vigorous hostility
from
their
sion
w hich
Mughal enemies, surviving
advantage of the confu-
resulted from a series of Persian and
ing the middle decades.
divided
to take
at first
I
Afghan invasions dur-
hereafter their strength continued to grow,
but eventually united under the rule and expanding em-
Maharaja Ranjit Singh (1799-1839).
pire of
Rapid collapse followed the death of Ranjit Singh and by 1849 the
Punjab had been annexed bv the advancing British. I'he Panth seemed to be rapidly decaying and British observers confidently predicted its
imminent demise, fheir mistake leads us to the last of the great controversies which we shall note in this chapter. During the later years of the nineteenth century and the first three decades of the twentieth there occurred a notable revival, one w hich has left traditions powerfully present within the
modern Panth. The
credit for this revival
is
usually bestowed on the enlightened devotion of the leaders responsible for the
The movement as
Singh Sabha movement.
first
Singh Sabha was founded
in
whole was troubled bv internal conflicts its active participants succeeded in promoting a reformed Sikhism of a highly durable quality."^ Eventually it was overtaken bv the more strident approach of the Akali movement which during the early 192()s conducted a non-violent campaign aimed at restoring the principal gurdwaras to orthodox Khalsa control."^ \ laving thus sketched the received version of the Singh Sabha and .\kali movements we must note that here too questioning voices have been raised and that much remains to be done before anything resem1873 and although the
a
bling a consensus emerges. Reference to the
most direct of the relevant
w as made
criticisms,
46
earlier in this chapter
namely the claim
that the
FOUR CESTURIES OE
HISTORY
S/KII
Singh Sabha version of the Khalsa identity should be regarded British creation.
This creation,
it is
as a
maintained, was subscquentlv adopted
and embellished bv a class elite within Sikh society, d'he general theory may be summarily rejected, but some of the questions which it raises should certainly be examined before they are put aside. In addition to British intentions and class interests these questions concern the issue of multiple identities within the nineteenth-century Panth and the inlluence of political circumstances on particular groups within
time for firm conclusions This
but
it
may seem an
is
is still
far off.
I
The
he debate has scarcely begun.
unsatisfactory note on
which
end this survey, of academic play.
to
an accurate impression of the current state
Few would
it.
suggest that a mass upheaval awaits us, that the old land-
be swept away leaving an entirely
new
Fhe outline of Sikh history will retain its familiar features and the same figures will continue to dominate it. It is, however, likely that new interpretations will produce some considerable shifts in the understanding of that history. From the debate now under way there may yet emerge marks
will
some very
significant changes.
47
landscape.
4
Sikh Doctrine
TX
HIS chapter otters two elementary hypotheses, two simple notions
which some might as tollows.
A
like to
regard as axioms. The
religious tradition can be
first
may
understood only
be enunciated
in its
own
terms
rather than exclusively in translation. This, in practice, requires an un-
derstanding of the terminology w hich expresses the fundamentals of the tradition, an
understanding w hich can seldom be achieved by means of
single-word English translations. first
and
to
some extent merely
The second axiom follows from the
restates
It is
it.
that the essential outline
of a religious tradition can be sketched by defining a series of key terms in
an appropriate sequence.
w e seek an understanding of the Sikh concentrate our primary attention upon a carefully If
therefore
terminology arranged
which
is
in a logical order.
w ithin such
a limited
selected choice of
It
would
space either
plainly be impos-
a detailed analysis
individual doctrines or the closely integrated sequence
theology of (iurmat should eyentually deliver.
48
we must
Needless to say the selection
offered here must be inadequate.
sible to present
tradition
It
vv
of
hich an ideal
should be possible.
SIKH nOCTRISE however, to indicate the elements of a system, hoping that someone within the Panth will one day correct it and spell it out in detail. I he paramount need for working from the tradition’s own concepts and terminology can be illustrated by a brief examination of that most obvious of examples. W e have all heard reasons w hy the word “(iod” is
inappropriate as
a translation
when we move beyond
the Christian
and some readers w ill find those reasons very cogent indeed. I he Sikh example must surely offer strong support for the claim. I'he term which is traditionally used to express (iuru Nanak’s concept is Akdl Purakhy literally “the timeless Being.” Akal Purakh is a very different concept from the range of meaning covered by the English word “(iod” and if w e persist in using the latter term w e shall find it very tradition
difficult
indeed to avoid
its
distinctive connotations. Kartdr
is
another
Supreme Being in w hich the translation “Oeat(jr” communicates a range of meaning different from the W estern sense. Some, it is true, claim the ability to be able to make the necessary adjustments and thus to invest the old word w ith new meaning. It is
of (itiru Nanak’s terms for the
a
claim which deserves to be met with considerable skepticism.'
is is
complicated one as
far as the
Sikh tradition
concerned, (^implications arise partly because Nanak’s
own meaning
Phis particular issue
is
a
necessarily elusive and partly because the Akdl Purakh usage
is
ac-
companied by the more recent compound Vdhiguru. d his, however, is the kind of problem w hich belongs to a later stage in the analysis. Any survey of the tradition must start with (iuru Nanak and the w ord Vdhiguru has no place in his teachings, foday Vdhiguru is a more common term than Akdl Purakh, but in Nanak’s time it was unknown and when it first came into use it meant “Praise to the (iuru.”^ Nanak actually employed many different words in giving expression to the ultimate reality
these terms are traditional are
words which designate
attempt is
not.
Some of names such as Hari and Ram. Many more his attributes, commonly as negatives which
w hich Sikh
in the traditional
tradition calls
style to define reality in
Indeed the word a-kdl or “timeless”
Nanak’s meaning
is
Akdl Purakh.
is
a
terms of what
it
conspicuous example.
necessarily elusive because his belief and practice
were essentially mystical and in the last resort only those who comprehend Akal Purakh in their ow n mystical experience can truly grasp the meaning w hich human words endeavor to communicate, d he final and all-embracing term is alakh. .\kal Purakh is ineffable. This does not mean, however, that Akal Purakh is altogether un-
49
SIKH DOCI RISE
knovvable.
On
vealed for
all
the contrary, the essential being of Akal Purakh to see
if
they w
ill
is
re-
but open their eyes. VV e are brought
word which can be regarded as the most important of all the many terms used by Nanak in order to communicate his understanding
to the
of Akal l\irakh and of the in
way
to liberation.
And
it
should be noted
passing that a particular English vvord has just been used instead of
vation,” a
common
The word was “liberation” and not choice based on the conviction that the latter term is
another more
usage.
“salalto-
gether inappropriate in the Sikh context.
That important word
in
ndm, frequently linked w
ith
sat'i
to give the
ndm is, of course, “name” and for once there is an English rendering which corresponds closely to the original. Ehe problem is knowing w hat ndm or “the Name”
compound form
sat'mdm.
Ehe
literal
translation of
means in Nanak’s repeated usage. brief definition offered tw enty years ago was “the total expression of all that (u)d is.”^ Substitute Akal Purakh for God and you have a reasonable summary. Ehe definition adds that the same reality can also be called the Eruth, thus indicating the sense of the sat 'indm
compound.
everyw here around us and w ithin us, yet man is rendered congenitally blind by hatimai. "Phis is another compound, one which comprises two forms of the first person singular pronoun. .\s such it signifies the pov\ erful impulse to succumb to personal gratification, thus d'he
ndm
is
earning the kind of karam (karma) w hich holds
a
person firmly within
the cycle oi sansdr. Birth follows death and suffering infuses
all.
Akal
Purakh, however, looks graciously upon the suffering of mankind and
through the guru utters the sahad which communicates derstanding of the ndm to those is
who
a sufficient
are able to “hear”
thus the “voice” of .\kal Purakh, mystically uttered
it.
d he
un-
Guru
w ithin the man
Ehe mhad or “W ord” is the actual “utterance” and in “hearing” it a person awakens to the reality of the divine Name, immanent in all that lies around and within him. he nature of the divine Name is itself determined by the hukam of (heart-mind-spirit) of the devotee.
I
Akal Purakh.
Phis designates the divine order of the entire universe,
synonymous with harmony. Liberation is achieved by means of bringing oneself w ithin this harmony. An objective which progressively attained by the strictly interior discipline of ndm is simaran or “remembering the ndm." Phis discipline ranges from the simple repetition of an appropriate word or mantra {ndm japan) through the an order which
is
devout singing of hymns
{kirtan) to sophisticated meditation.
so
All arc
DOCTRISE
S/K/I
designed to bring the individual into accord with the ndw, thus earning lor
him or her the kind of
condition of blissful sahaj
karatn is
khand (the “realm of truth”), physical death which
is
which provides
release.
I
he ultimate
when the spirit ascends to sack which may be reached before the
achieved a goal
its final seal.
communicating this truth Nanak became the embodiment of the eternal guru and those who succeeded him in the lineage which he established assumed the same role. Although the line included ten individuals there remained but one^//rw, passing sucone responsible
.\s the
cessively
for
from one to the next
d heir compositions are their teachings
as a single
known
bam
as
or
The
of course Ciurmat.
is
flame ignites a series of torches,
gurhdm and the sum fifth in
total
the succession,
of
Guru
had the bdui of the first five (lurus recorded in a book (grauth) 1603 1, adding to it approved works by earlier representatives of the
.\rjan, in
—
Sant tradition such as ferred the respect
due
Namdev and to
its
Kabir.
authors and
it
Upon
the book
was con-
was accordingly' known
the Ciranth Sahib. Later, as the sy stem of doctrine developed,
it
as
yvas
to receive a further dignity.
The establishment of a spiritual lineage folloyv ed the first forming of a group of disciples. These yvere the original sikb, “learners” or Sikhs. As a group of devotees yvith a common lovaltv and tradition thev constituted a pauth (“path” or “yvay”) and because the first lovaltv had been to Nanak thev yvere knoyvn as the Sduak-panth. Pauth is another of the kev terms is
yy
hich refuses to yield a simple translation.
an analvsis yvhich
for the tyvo at this
is
better postponed until the discussion of khdlsd,
terms overlap to
point because there
Ciiirus attracted
and
This, hoyvever,
a
yvill
for this
considerable extent.
be reference to the
It
should be noted
folloyy
ing yvhich the
group of disciples the appropriate term
is
either \duak-pauth or simply Pauth.
Before discussing khdlsd there
is
an intermediate term to be intro-
duced. During the period of (iuru Arjan (1581-1606) the Nanak-panth
became the object of .Mughal suspicion and the Guru himself died
in
.Mughal custody’. .Vccording to tradition he responded to the developing threat of .Mughal hostility by instructing his son, the future (iuru 1
largobind (1606-44), “to
to this
command
donned
sit
fully
armed on
his throne.”"* In
obedience
Idargobind, having succeeded his father, symbolically’
tyvo syvords.
One
syvord designated a neyvlv-assumed temporal
role {turn) yvhile the other represented the spiritual authority’
had inherited from
his five succes.sors {piri).
51
y\
hich he
SIKH DOCTRIKK
I'hc doctrine
of mirl-pM signals the Panth’s immenselv' important
towards militancy, d
his did not
mean
shift
that the spiritual concerns of the
Nanak-panth had been renounced. On the contrary, these were explicitly affirmed throughout the remainder of the Gurus’ period and the same emphasis continues to the present day. I he change should not be understood, howeyer, as the mere defending by military means of an unchanging theory of spirituality. It was a change which significantly affected the subsetjuent understanding and promulgation of Sikh earlier
doctrine.
It
during the time of the tenth (iuru, (iobind Singh, that
is
the change emerges to
full
yiew. Akal Purakh
is
characteristically called
Sarah Loh, “All-Steel,” and the sword assumes a central significance in the doctrine and ritual of the Panth. I
hee
1
inyoke. All-conquering Svxord, Destroyer of Pvil,
Ornament of the brave. Powerful your arm and radiant your
glory, your splendour as
dazzling as the brightness of the sun. joy of the devout and scourge of the wicked, \ anquisher of sin, I
1
seek vour protection.
lail
to the
mv
w orld’s Creator and
invincible Protector the Sword.’
Akal Purakh w ho
It is
burnished
Sustainer,
steel
is
here addressed, divinity
of the unsheathed sword.
The
made
manifest in the
intervening history of
the Panth explains the change and appropriate terminology retlects I
it.
he sword thus introduced into Sikh doctrine and tradition figures
prominently
in amrit sanskdr, the initiation
the recreated Panth of
Guru Gobind
ceremony marking entry
Singh.
course, the Khalsa. Although the term
is
The
recreated Panth
correctly traced to the
into
is,
of
word
immediate etymology seems not to be the common adjectiyal meaning of “pure.” d he Persian khdlis had produced the form khdlsd, used as a noun to designate lands under the direct administration of the crown or central authority. As the early Panth grew and expanded the
khdlis the
superv ision of an indiv idual saiigat (congregation) or small clusters of sangats was entrusted by the (iurus to gats,
v
Some sanof the Guru
icars called rnasands.
howev er, remained under the continuing supervision
Guru Ciobind many of the rnasands had become arrogant or corrupt and in commanding all Sikhs to abandon the rnasands the Gum simultaneously summoned them to join his khdlsd. All who heeded the (iuru’s summons and accepted invitation were required to observe the rahit, another key term. The Rahit comprises as his khdlsd.
By
the time of
SIKH DOCTRISE the outward symbols, the very specific rules of conduct, and the dis-
which
tinctive rituals
such
is
it
much
a
a
Sikh of the Khalsa
very important word indeed, one w hich should certainly be
better
known.
In
its
developed form
features as the pafjj kakke or “Five
with the
expected to observe. As
is
letter
Ks”
includes such celebrated
it
(the five items, each beginning
“k” which a Khalsa Sikh should wear) and a rigorous
ban on smoking.
We
now to the word “Fanth.” Are “Panth” and “Khalsa” synonyms.^ For some Khalsa Sikhs the answer is a firm “yes.” Others, however, are obviously unw illing to adopt such a hard line, for in so return
doing they necessarily imply that
many who
call
themselves Sikhs have
Fhe more obvious of these deregistered claimants are the so-called sahaj-dhari Sikhs, men and women who affirm allegiance to the teachings of Nanak and his successors (particularly to the doctrine and practice of ndm s'lmaran) but w ho decline to accept Khalsa no right
to
do
so.
initiation or the full rigors of the Rahit. Less
obvious because they so
model are those who observe the outward forms required by the Rahit (particularly the kes or uncut hair) but who nevertheless fail to “take amrit" (i.e. undergo initiation). Such people are certainly not members of the Khalsa. Are they thereby disqualified from membership of the Ranth also? .\s we shall see, the ambiguity of this situation reflects a real ambivalence. W ith regard to the definition of the Khalsa there is no ambiguity, nor is there likely to be a problem in the minds of most of the uninitiated. For the latter the simple answer is that the Panth is a larger entity which contains Sikhs of the Khalsa together with many who for various reasons do not accept the full Khalsa discipline. Fhe Khalsa closely resemble the Khalsa
may be
regarded an an
identity, but the Rahit
matically excludes is
all
elite
or as the “orthodox” version of the Sikh
need not be regarded
w ho do
not meet
the loyal Khalsa Sikh to think?
If
its strict
as a
code which auto-
requirements. But w hat
(iuru CJobind Singh envisaged
purpose for the Khalsa surely that intention must apply to to be his disciples, (falling oneself a follower of (Kiru
unacceptable
if it
all
Nanak
a
w ho claim is
certainly
implies a rejection of later developments within the
Fhe Guru is one and instructions issued by the tenth (mru are as binding on Sikhs as guidance given by the first. fhe problem is a real one and at times of crisis (such as the recent past and immediate present) it can become serious. It is further complicated by the widespread existence of multiple identities in Punjabi Panth.
SIKII
DOCTRINE
moving
from one to another or (more commonly) maintaining dual identities w ithout any sense of incongruity. The (]uestion is one w hich the outsider is unable to answer except society, with individuals
in strictly
pragmatic terms.
w
to be Sikhs
\\ t
freely
may
observe that
many
people claim
ithout taking amrit and that a substantial proportion of
these people actually observe the
more obvious requirements of
d'hough their precise status may be
a
the Rahit.
matter for concern outsiders are
certainly not entitled to offer answers, d'he debate continues, advancing
and receding as circumstances dictate. It has sometimes involved the terms sikhJ and siiighJ, w ith the former used to describe the larger identity
and the
designate the specific identity of the Khalsa.
latter to
The demarcation issue is not the only problem associated w ith this richly complex word “Panth.” .Another difficulty is signaled by attempts to supply single-word Knglish translations, attempts which should serve to reinforce the point with regard to the translating of basic terminology.
It is
word “church”;
easy to dispense with one such suggestion, namely the this
inappropriate that I
still
it
appears from time to time, but
quickly creates uneasiness and
is
it is
soon abandoned.
w'o other attempts have achieved a wider popularity
little
more
“Sect”
attention.
is
a
One
is
“sect” and the other
word w hich has been
is
and deserve
a
“nation.”
dealt with already.
history, having acquired a firm hold
so patently
It
has had a long
on an early generation of European
observers. Nov\’adays, however, the usage
is
inappropriate, for
an orthodoxy from which
it
im-
most users of this particular “translation” the orthodoxy from which Sikhism diverged was presumably “Hinduism.” The latter term is itself unacceptable (particularly as a word designating an agreed orthodoxy) and even if it were viable the suggestion that the modern Sikh Panth can be described as its “sect” would be absurd. Such a usage is also regarded as highly offensive by many Sikhs. The word has run its misguided course and mercifully it is seldom heard nowadays except as a feature plies the existence of
it
deviates, f or
of the language of polemic.
For some people, of course, the use of “sect” derives from
a
cursory
interpretation of the nature of the Panth rather than from any acquaint-
ance with the actual word.
way,
to the
I
he same applies, in an even more complex
second example. British authors who, during the
first
half
of the nineteenth century, referred to the Sikhs as a “nation” are most unlikely to have had the
word panth
in
mind,
rellected the existence of the very visible
fheir usage obviously
kingdom of .Maharaja Ranjit
S/Kf/
DOCTRIXE
Singh. I'he description, having slumped w
ith
Sikh
political fortunes in
the later nineteenth century, has since revived and during recent years it
has been ardently promoted bv advocates of a larger political auto-
mony
modern usage, though specifically associated with the Fanth, involves some crucial shades of meaning. lovering in the background is the word qatim, an Araliic term which having entered for the Sikhs.
Fhis
1
Funjabi through Fersian has long since been thoroughly naturalized. I
he Fanth constitutes
But does qauw I
in
he issue
is
a
“nation” because the Sikhs are a qaurn.
really deliver “nation” as an appropriate translation?
an exceedingly controversial one and great tact
order to preempt an overwrought response. In
means
“a people
who
its
is
lated today as “ethnic identity.” \\ hat
it
qaum meaning
original sense
stand together” and the substance of this
has carried over to Funjabi usage. Arguably the
required
word can
best be trans-
certainly involves
is
a conflict
of attitudes which continues to ramify through Sikh society. In a very
we
sense
real
emerged
in
Funjabi.
I
from
problem of translation which, having
are dealing with a
English usage, has
his
linguistic
is
now
returned to create confusion in
not to suggest that the fundamental problem derives
W hat
misunderstanding.
it
does suggest
is
that the lin-
problem concerning corporate the basic problem has been seriously aggravated
guistic issue accurately reflects a basic
Sikh identity and that
bv linguistic misunderstanding. Other terms which have figured prominently in the recent crisis will bring us back to clarity and firm definition. The founding of the Khalsa order and the decades of \\ arfare which followed immediately thereafter remolded the traditions of the Fanth, creating a heroic ideal which endures to the present day. The ideal is commonly perceived to be the sant-sipdin, he who combines the spirituality of the devout believer {sant) with the bravery and obedience of the true soldier {sipdhJ). I'he supreme exemplar is Ciuru (iobind Singh and to this ideal the loyal Khalsa must aspire.
Sant
is
an interesting term in that
for a succession of
meanings.
another example of
a
Is is
it
has been required to do service
also interesting because
word which has been skewed by
its
it
provides
standard En-
Ehe temptation to insert an “i” has proved irresistible his is a misleading transand sant has typically emerged as “saint.” lation, regardless of which meaning may be indicated by the actual Fun-
glish translation.
I
jabi usage.
I'he
word
sant derives
from
sat
and thus designates
in its basic sense
^
S/KII
one
who knows
be applied to
nOCTRISE As sueh it came to the one with which (iuru
the truth or eoniprehends reality.
a particular
Nanak himself was
devotional tradition,
affiliated.
Fhe word passed into standard Sikh usage
through the works of Nanak and
his successors, bearing a strong sense
of devotion and intimaev associated w ith the concept of the sadh saiigat or satsaiig (the congregation of true believers). Increasingly
w
it
came
to
and thus acquired the status of an actual title. Those \\ ho have followed recent events in the I\mjab will appreciate how intluential some Sants have now become. Such men are preceptors whose primary function is to give instruction in the beliefs and traditions of the Fanth. These traditions stress vvorldlv involvement as well as spiritual devotion and it should thus come as no surprise to discover that men bearing the title of Sant are to be found amongst the
designate an
elite
ithin the sangat
political leaders of the
Such men teach the
modern Fanth. mm-pJn tradition and
those
who
personallv match
the ideal will be regarded as saut-sipdhJ. Other terms used in current
Sikh polities also recall the militant traditions of the Fanth. inant political partv unit of the partv
is
is
the Akali Dal or Akali
designated
ganized political campaign
important and lengthy “a
war fought
is
a jathd (militarv
a niorchd (facing
political struggle
Armv. Each
territorial
detachment) and an or-
the enemv).
may
The dom-
A
partieularlv
be called a dharam
ytidh,
'''
in
defense of dharam.
words which defv translation, an instance which will have a familiar ring, Dharam is the Funjabi version of dharma, but one should not assume that the tw o are identical in terms of meaning and connotation. Although the Fanth preserves the caste structure of societv it is non-easte in theorv and it thus rejects the strict This leads us to another of the
definition of dharma as the obligations associated with a particular caste identitv.
moves awav from the individual to whole, and the sense connoted bv dharma
In Sikh usage the stress
the Fanth or to societv as a
w hieh alone provides a sure foundation for harmonv and social stabilitv. An attack on dharam is an attack on justice, on righteousness, and on the moral order generallv. It must be defended at all costs and when other means have all failed the defenders of dharam must resort to the sword. involves the moral order
None
of this should suggest that the Fanth exists onlv to breathe
or wield naked swords.
The use of force
is
fire
eertainlv sanctioned in a
famous couplet attributed to (iuru Ciobind Singh' but is is authorized onlv in defence of dharma and onlv as a last resort. In times of distur-
SIKH DOCTRISE
bance or
crisis
one
is
though
liable to forget that the gurclwaras,
legit-
imately used for political purposes, are primarily places of worship.
haye come to yet another of the key terms.
I
V\’e
he word gurduard (angli-
cized as “gurdwara”) can be translated as either “the Guru’s door” or
“by means of the Ciuru’s [grace]. Since earliest days members of the Fanth haye gathered together in satsangs to sing kirtan (sacred songs, specifically those composed by the Gurus and eyentually those which are recorded in the Ciranth Sahib), d'he building in vyhich a devotional
gathering was held was originally
known
as a dharam-sdla,
the course of the eighteenth century this term
but during
was progressively sup-
planted by gurduard.
The change presumably occurred because of the increasingly com-
mon
presence within these buildings of the Ciuru himself in the form
of the sacred scripture. Following the death of (iuru Ciobind Singh the mystical guru remained present within the scripture which
had compiled
a
century
earlier,
Ciuru Ciranth Sahib, sharing this
Guru Arjan
became the dignity with the gathered Panth which d'he (iranth Sahib thus
likewise incorporated the mystical presence of the eternal Ciuru. practice the scripture has proved to be the effective vehicle and
presence constitutes any room or building
W ithin
its
In
mere
gurdwara.
a
gurdwara most activity focuses on the sacred volume or its contents. Fhe standard pattern of worship consists largely of the singing of kirtan, led by cjualified members of the sangat or by professional hymn-singers called rdgis. At appropriate times kardh prasdd (sanctified food) is distributed to all who are present and kathd may be delivered, a
d'his consists of an exposition of the scriptures or perhaps the narrating
of an incident from the lives of the
Kathd
We
is
Cmrus
or from later Sikh history.
normally the responsibility of the gurdwara’s
come
to yet another of the terms
which has been misunderstood
during the course of the recent political crisis. A grantht is a person who serves as the custodian of a gurdwara, with responsibility for the
maintenance of the shrine and the conduct of its routine are humble men serving small gurdwaras, but the few pointed to prominent shrines acquire of
all
is
the (>hief Ciranthi of
1
rituals.
who
Most
are ap-
Most prominent Amritsar (known to for-
a larger dignity.
larimandir in
eigners as the Ciolden femple). In recent times the (]hief Ciranthi of the (iolden d'emple has to
come
be regarded as one of seven “High Priests” of the Panth. Five of the
others are the jathedars (or
“Oimmanders”) of the
five takhats or “thrones,”
S/Kf/
gurdwaras with
a
DOCTRISE
unic]uc role and dignity.
Special decisions affect-
ing the temporal welfare and politics of the Panth are taken before
Akal
l
akhat, the building
which
faces the Ciolden
was so seriously damaged during the army Takhat
is
Temple and which
assault in
June 1984. Akal
thus the principle focus of the Panth’s worldly concerns, sup-
Anandpur, Damdama, Patna, and Nander. The takhats are highly rcyered as institutions, and their custodians are accorded a certain measure of dignity and respect. Each takhat is also serx ed by granthis and the (vhief Ciranthi of Akal Takhat has been recognized as one of the “High Priests.” It is, howeyer, w holly incorrect to describe these two (iranthis and fiye Jathedars as “1 ligh Priests.” The Panth recognizes no priesthood and by no stretch of the popular imagination can these seven men be ported by similar institutions
in
legitimately regarded as priests. Moreover, they are not particularly
“high.” All receive their appointments by committee decisions and each
can be removed by the same process. circles
to treat
them
as
It
has been convenient in
“high” during the recent
crisis
in
some
order to
lend weight to policy statements and claims which are routed through
them. Five of the seven are appointed by the Sikh organization which
main gurdwaras in the Punjab (the Shiromani (iurdwara Parbandhak Committee) and the remaining two have been vulnerable to central government pressure because their seats in Patna and Nander are well beyond the borders of the Punjab. The media have picked up the term “High Priests” and in persistently using it have distorted our understanding of both the nature of the Panth and the mechanics of
controls the
the recent crisis. If
one
is
seeking genuine authority in the Panth one should examine
the term pafjj pidre, “the Cherished Five.”
W hen
(mru Gobind Singh chose
proven loyalty to receive the
first
five Sikhs of
baptism and then to administer
ers. All initiation
it
to the
inaugurating the Khalsa
Guru
himself and to oth-
ceremonies have since been conducted by groups of
plan and important decisions concerning a sangat may likewise be entrusted to them. This is not the end of questions of authority, however, for one may well have to investigate those w ho stand behind the pad] pidre. There can be no doubt that the issue of authority w ithin the Panth is an exceedingly difficult one. One last word which deserves to be mentioned is sevd^ yet another example of a term which undergoes a shift in meaning when introduced in its standard English translation. The translation “service” can easily pafij
S/KH DOCTRISE suggest the kind of welfare activity which
munity or
is
intended to
alleviate individual suffering. Seva certainly
com-
assist a
embraces these
purposes, at least within the modern understanding of the term, but
primary meaning designates service to
a
words which,
meaning and connotation,
in the full richness
of
its
gurdwara.
It is
its
another of the defies
easy translation.
As such
it
reinforces the claim that only through careful analysis of
such terminology can the inner meaning of
a culture or a tradition
be
penetrated. In addition, by inducting such words into English usage, it
may
be possible to diminish misunderstanding and distortion.
terminology stantial;
w ith
may
The
often seem intimidating, but the inducements are sub-
diligence and perseverance there are considerable rewards.
'
5
Who
W,no
a
is
Sikh?
Is a
Sikh? Sikh Rahit Marydcid, the standard manual of Sikh
doctrine and behavior, provides a succinct answer:
A
Sikh
Ciurus
who believes in (iod (Akal Purakh); in (Guru Nanak to Guru Gobind Singh); in Sri Guru is
any person
the ten
(iranth
Sahib, other writings of the ten Gurus, and their teachings; in the
Khalsa initiation ceremony instituted by the tenth Guru; and
v\
ho does
not believe in anv other svstem of religious doctrine.
But all
is
this
statement really a sufficient answer to the question? Like
such summaries of
a religious tradition
it
inevitablv glosses over
com-
and reducing diversitv to a single simple offers is the normative Khalsa definition
plexity, skirting essential issues
model. I'he model which
and
it
it
should be acknow ledged
at
the outset that there have alw avs been
other definitions of Sikh identity. But inition has long since established
its
60
it
is
a fact that the
Khalsa def-
claim to be regarded as the ortho-
WHO dox torm
IS
A SIKH?
Although the continuing problem of non-Khalsa versions ol Sikh identity is one which must be discussed later, in order to examine the nature of orthodox Sikhism it is necessary first to discuss the doctrine and practice of the Khalsa. I he first answer to the question “\\ ho is a Sikh?” should be that he or she is a Sikh of the Khalsa. It was not always so. d'he inauguration of the Khalsa as a formal order and discipline took place 200 years after Guru Nanak first began to preach the doctrine of deliverance through the practice of ndm simaran. Although proponents of alternative Sikh identities commonly draw pointed attention to this feature it presents no problems as far as the Khalsa theologian is concerned. It is adequately covered by the fundamental Sikh doctrine of the Guru. I he Cmru, or mystical “voice” of .\kal Purakh, is a single consistent authority, present within the Panth since first it w as established. For more than two centuries it sfxike through a succession of ten Masters (CKiru Nanak to Ciuru (iobind Singh) and since the death of the tenth it has continued to speak through the sacred scripture (the Guru Granth) and the corporate community (the Guru Panth). I'he divine wisdom of the eternal Guru has been available to succeeding generations of Sikhs, guiding them as circumstances change into fresh decisions and new patterns. By the end of the seventeenth century circumstances had indeed changed, and it was to meet new challenges that Ciuru Gobind Singh took his momentous decision to ot Sikhism.
reconstitute the Panth. traditional accounts describe the actual inauguration of the Khalsa in
graphic detail.
festival to
News was
spread
v\’ithin
the Panth that the annual
Day 1699 was
be celebrated on Baisakhi
to
be
a particularly
and that Sikhs should gather before the Guru on that occasion. After the expectant crowd had assembled all were stunned by the proclamation which the Guru issued. Five Sikhs were needed, he declared, five Sikhs who were prepared to offer their heads as a sacrifice. Fhis summons was greet(^d with an understandable lack of ensignificant event
thusiasm, but eventually a loyal Sikh called Daya Singh offered himself
and was led by his Master into a nearby tent. sword was heard and when the Guru returned
I
he thud of
a falling
was a blood-stained demand and one by one four it
weapon w hich he carried. He repeated his more Sikhs trooped into the place of slaughter, each to lose The Guru then revealed what had actually happened inside Each of the
five heroes
had retained
6
/
his
head and
his head.
the tent.
in their place five
WHO goats had been slain.
The
five
IS
A SIKH?
heroes were the original Panj Pidre, the
“(dierished Five” chosen for their bravery and total loyalty as the nucleus of a I
new
order,
^
members of
laving thus chosen the foundation
having initiated them with the (juru
pdhtil) the
He
hands.
is
new
rite
his
new
order and
of sword-baptism {khande dl
said to have received the
same baptism from
their
then delivered a sermon, explaining his reasons for intro-
ducing the new order and enunciating the code of conduct which its initiated members were to follow. He was, in other words, proclaiming the Rahit and
is
it
the Rahit which defines in very specific terms the
must observe, tradition readilv acknowledges that certain features of the Rahit were alreadv a part of the pre-Khalsa pattern and it records that one major addition (the conferring of the Guru’s authority on the Granth and the Panth) was made nine years later. It clearly implies, however, that the substance of the Rahit had been delivered to the Khalsa by the time pattern of belief and practice which the Khalsa Sikh
the tenth
Guru
died.
The
Rahit remains thereafter the sole and suffi-
cient statement of Khalsa doctrine, ritual
such
and personal behavior.
.\s
supplies the standard definition of Sikh orthodoxv and Sikh
it
identity.
Much
that
is
contained in this popular version of the 1699 proceed-
open to serious question and although certain features receive support from near-contemporary sources others do not.^ At this point ings
is
the onlv feature
One would
\\
hich need concern us
is
the promulgating of the Rahit.
expect that a statement so central to the
life
and purpose
of the reconstituted Panth would have been committed to writing at an
Guru Gobind Singh. The “letters of command” to partic-
earlv stage and at least within the lifetime of
Guru
did indeed issue hukam-ndmds or
and sangats, and the examples which survive incorporate items which would certainlv have been included in anv svstematic statement of the complete Rahit. This, however, was a form of communication which had been used bv some of his predecessors and although the surviving examples provide valuable illustrations of contemporary practice they cannot have been intended primarilv as vehiular individuals
cles of the Rahit in
No
anv
full
or svstematic form."^
such systematic statement survives from the actual period of the
Randhir Singh has assumed that manuals or comprehensive statements would certainly have been prepared for use bv the Guru’s emissaries in order to instruct scattered sangats in their ncwlvGuru’s
lifetime.
62
WHO established Khalsa faith.’
IS
SIKH?
:\
These manuals,
implied, must since have
it is
Others have draw n attention to the upheavals of the period immediatelv follow ing 1699, suggesting that the urgency of conflict would leave little time for careful recording of w hat otherw ise could be effecbeen
lost.
communicated bv word of mouth and
tivelv
The
fact that a distinctive
visible
example.
code of conduct w as operative by the early
in Sainapati’s
by references occurring Gur Sohha (Radiance of the Ciuru). Gur Sohhd is a narrative
poem which,
as
decades of the eighteenth centurv
genre. ^
It
is
its title
development of Sikh
indicated
suggests, belongs to the hagiographic gur-bilas
work of verv
a
is
great significance in terms of tracing the
because
ideals, not least
lection of Rahit items. Lnfortunatelv
siderablv diminished bv the fact that
its
its
it
supplies an early se-
potential significance
is
con-
actual date has yet to be con-
fhe two contending dates are 1711 and 1745. If the earlier of the two could be defmitivelv established the importance of Gur Sohhd would be greatlv enhanced, for this would place the work verv close to the death of Ciuru (iobind Singh in 1708. Kven v\'ith its precise date undetermined, however, Gur Sohhd a work of great significance. There can be little doubt that it belongs to the first half of the eighteenth century and in terms of the available sources for tracing Khalsa development this makes it very early indeed. .\mongst the Rahit items which it offers are an insistence on the timehonored practice of udm simaran and a categorical denunciation of hooclusivelv settled,
kah-smoking and cutting the hair.^ Giur Sohhd remains, however, a narrative poem. It makes no effort to enunciate the Rahit in sy stematic or comprehensive terms and accordingly’
it
cannot
of the Rahit).
strictly’
W orks
be regarded as
a
rahit-nama
recorded version
yvhich can legitimately be regarded as rahit-namas
no rahit-nama survives from the actual are, hoyvever, several
As
have
just indicated,
lifetime of (iuru
Gobind Singh.
present an even yvider range of problems.
There
(a
yve
such yvorks claiming to record instructions
yvhich their yvriters received directly’ from the (iuru before he died.
These yvorks form the rahit-nama corpus as
it
existed prior to the
com-
posing of the modern tyventieth-century code. In no case can yve accept a rahit-nama’s
the
Guru
claim that
it
reports injunctions received directly from
and, as yve shall see, the problems associated yvith dating them
and placing them in their appropriate contexts are is, hoyvever, no'doubt about their potential value
development, nor of their importance
63
far
from simple. There
as indicators of
as standards to
y\
Khalsa
hich later gen-
WHO
IS
A SIKH?
orations have appealed in the ongoing effort to define normative Khalsa practiee. 1
he rahit-namas which appear prior to the twentieth century can be
divided according to form into three groups.” All offer statements, brief or lengthv, of
w
hat a Khalsa Sikh
how
expected to believe and
is
he
or she should act. Four of the rahit-namas are brief works expressed in
simple Punjabi verse, d hree are lengthy prose collections, and the re-
maining two are brief works
in prose. All
nine claim or clearly imply
Guru Gobind
derivation from the specific words of
Singh, posing as
products of his actual intention rather than as responses to any subse-
quent period of Khalsa experience.
Of
the four verse rahit-namas
the distinguished poetr\’
commands
member
two
are attributed to Bhai
Nand
Lai,
of the tenth (iuru’s entourage whose Persian
great reverence
w ithin
the Panth.
fhese two are brieflv
and I'ajiakhah-tidtna (Manual of Penances). fhe former (plainlv misnamed) is more discursive than the usual rahit-nama, concentrating on an exposition of the doctrine of the mvstical Ciuru and stressing the believer’s obligation to practice ndm
entitled Pramn-uttar ((Catechism)
simaran.
Bv
contrast the I'auakhdh-udmd follows the tvpical format.
ing listed various practices to be spurned or observed,
it
concludes with
assurance of the future glorv awaiting the Khalsa.
a stirring
words continue
to exercise an
immense
rdj karegd khalsa, dki rahahi
na
Hav -
Its
final
influence:
koi.
kh^'dr hoi sahh milainge, bachahi saran jo hoi.
fhe Khalsa All
shall rule,
w ho endure
no enemv
shall
remain.
suffering and privation shall be brought to
the safetv of the CLiru’s protection.*^
fhe remaining verse rahit-namas, attributed respectively to Prahilad Singh (or Prahilad Rai) and Desa Singh, also follow the standard form. Like the two works bearing Nand Lai’s name both claim to record firsthand information. Prahilad Singh is said to have been with (Liru ( h)bind Singh in Abchalnagar (the tow n of Nanded in the Deccan) during the period immediatelv preceding the Guru’s death there. According to the rahit-nama’s brief prologue the
Guru
evidentlv realized that
know its the Hesh. He therefore sum-
the Rahit should be recorded in order that the Khalsa might
duty
after he
moned to him.
was no longer present
in
Prahilad Singh for this specific purpose and dictated the Rahit
fhe rahit-nama attributed
64
to
Desa Singh similarlv claims
to
WHO
IS
A SIKIH
record the Guru’s words, supplemented bv information received from
Nand
Lal.*‘
same claim is made even more insistently bv one of the three prose rahit-namas which offer detailed statements of the Rahit. (>haupa Singh Chhibbar was closelv associated with (iuru Ciobind Singh, first as his khiddva (adult plavmate), then as his tutor, and finally as a trusted servant and counselor. Such a person might well claim intimate knowledge of the (iuru’s ideals and intentions. 1 he Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndmd This
does indeed make this claim, recording junctions which the Ciuru
is
in
profuse detail the
many
in-
said to have issued for the benefit of the
Khalsa.
Within
this
arate sections.
lengthv work the Rahit material
One randomlv
lists
actions
is
gathered into two sep-
w hich the khalsa Sikh should
perform or avoid; and the other specifies the many breaches of the Rahit for which an erring Khalsa should be required to do penance {tanakhdh).^^ I he remainder of the v\ork is devoted to various anecdotes
from the life-storv of Guru (iobind Singh, including a variant version of the founding of the Khalsa; to vigorous denunciations of the men who assumed leadership in the Khalsa following the Ciuru’s death; and fmallv to promises of the apocalvptic glorv which will accompanv the arrival of Kalki and the consequent dawning of the long-awaited Satiyuga.
The other two lengthv rahit-namas both belong to a much later period than the Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndrnd^ though this does not mean any from the standard claims to authenticity. In their present form both belong to the middle portion of the nineteenth centurv and at least one of them mav well have originated at this time. I his is the Rrem Stimdrag (or Raram Sumdrag), a work which begins with an announceretreat
ment of imminent cosmic
disaster
and then
details in
an unusuallv svs-
wav of life which the Khalsa should follow. I'he Sau Sdkhi or “Hundred Episodes” is also vitally concerned with the troubles which must afflict the Ranth and w ith prophecies of the rewards which tematic form the
await the faithful. In
its
extant form (and possibly in
its
origins) this
work has been associated w ith the Namdhari sect and w ith the agitation which it conducted during the early period of British rule particular
in the
two prose rahit-namas w hich confine the Rahit and deal with it briefly. One of the two
I
to
Punjab.
his leaves the
attributed to
Nand
Lai)
is
always found
65
in association
their attention (a
third
work
with the Chaupd
'
W
Rahit-nama.
Sifigh
I
hc
HO
few'
IS
A SIKH?
manuscripts which
record
Chaupd
the
Singh Rahit-ndmd also append this short and fragmentary statement as a
supplement. Finally there
the rahit-nama attributed to
is
Daya Singh,
first
Panj Piare to offer his head at the founding of the Khalsa in 1699.
the
Nand
uct the
Lai prose rahit-nama
This feature
is
W hereas
certainly an eighteenth-century prod-
is
Daya Singh version seems
century.'”
of the
plainly to date
from the nineteenth
reminder that claims to represent
a further
the direct dictation of the (iuru or a first-hand record of his pro-
nouncements must always be regarded with profound skepticism. Indeed, one can go further and affirm that no extant rahit-nama sustains its claims in this regard. All are removed, to a greater or lesser extent, from the lifetime of Cniru (iobind Singh. That conclusion, needless to say, leaves the considerable problem of which rahit-namas qualify for the “lesser extent” status and which must be more distantly removed from the founder of the Khalsa. Later in chapter
this
shall return to this
I
problem, together with the associated
difficulty of identifying actual contexts
and the varying
interests rep-
resented by each claimant.
Such
were
issues
a part
of the larger problem of authenticity which
confronted the more ardent of the Singh Sabha reformers the nineteenth century. 1 hat
the end of
Guru Gobind Singh had promulgated
Rahit was a tradition which could and must be accepted tion.
at
But did the extant rahit-namas
Guru? Plainly, for some of their
fully
and
w
the
ithout ques-
faithfully record the Rahit
seemed, they did not offer wholly
as delivered b\' the
it
reliable versions,
injunctions seemed manifestly to be
in conflict
with enlightened
own
Guru’s
may have been
time
Muslims
rected against
belief.
(all
Although the Muslim cruel tyrants
Muslims and not
rulers of the
some of the items
di-
just the perverse rulers)
appeared rather too fierce for the educated leaders of the
late nine-
seemed, offered little more than superstition, and some were patently in conflict with the egalitarian ideals of the Khalsa. Lhe Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndmd was vulnerable teenth-century Panth. Other injunctions,
on
all
it
three counts, producing such unacceptable examples as the fol-
lowing:
A
(lursikh
.
.
.
should never become friendly with
should he ever trust his sw ord.
.
.
.
66
Never
a
Muslim, nor
trust the oath of a
Muslim.
W
He who
HO
extinguishes a fire
IS
w
A SIKH?
ith
water
left
over after drinking vio-
lates the Rahit.
He who
administers baptism of the sword to
a
Sikh
woman
violates
the Rahit.
Anv
(lursikh
who
is
a
Brahman should
receive twice the service
[and consideration that other Sikhs receive].
I
he problem thus posed bv the extant rahit-namas produced three
different responses.
One
response was to prepare commentaries on the
Rahit in general, or on those features of
Sabha period perceived
it
which Sikhs of the Singh
to be of particular importance.
Some
of their
authors could be regarded as conservative upholders of received prac-
prominent example being Avatar Singh V'ahiria who in 1894 published his Khdlsd dharam-sdstar and in 1914 issued a substantial work of the same title which he had cornpiled.^^ Arrayed against them were the insistent reformers of the Tat
tice.
I'hese
Khalsa or
“
were the Sanatan Sikhs,
I
rue Khalsa,” radical
a
men who
increasingly sustained their
right to speak as the authentic voice of the Panth. 4 he general
“Singh Sabha” usually refers to these men, though one
may
term
not be
aware of the fact. 4 he first Singh Sabha was founded in 1873 and as the fat Khalsa gradually took shape its first endeavors concentrated on single issues, particularly those which might signal a distinctive Sikh identity as opposed to Hindu tradition and practice. Amongst the single issues the most conspicuous was the question of how Sikhs were to be married.
W hereas
had incorporated a sacred fire (thus implying obvious Hindu connotations) the fat Khalsa reformers insisted on the Anearlier ritual
and marriage ceremony as the only rite acceptable for Sikhs. Phis order involved circumambulation of the (iuru Ciranth Sahib in place of the sacred fire, thus utilizing a major feature of the Rahit to assert a separate Sikh identity.^' Other issues concentrated the debate on items which expressed a Khalsa identity as opposed to the generalized Sikh variant (the variant
w hich accommtxlated
the so-called Sahaj-dhdn or non-Khalsa
Sikh).''
fhis
was
a truly radical
approach, for the fat Khalsa was signaling
from Hindu society. Alone, however, it was not enough. Debates and publications of this kind could obviously contribute to a rediscovery and redefinition of the Rahit, but for the first time
its
basic difference
67
W
they were insuffieient.
A
HO
IS
A SIKH?
svstematie statement was also required, one
would earrv the proeess beyond eommentarv' and express the w hole of the historie Rahit in a single authoritatiye document. whieli
The second of the 189S
objeetive. In
Hindi, following
in
w as
a
I'at
Khalsa responses moved
a step
nearer to this
Kahn Singh of Nabha published Guramat it
compendium
with a Punjabi edition
in
1901.“^
Siidhakar
Guramat Siidhakar
of works relating to the person and period of Ckiru
from the rahit-namas and in editing the materials w hich were available to him Kahn Singh implicitly expressed a particular interpretation of them. Although his selections were presented as abridged versions of extant rahit-namas they (iobind Singh. Inevitably this included
a selection
more accurately described as expurgated versions. \\ hat this implied was that the pure Rahit enunciated by the tenth Guru had subsequently been corrupted by ignorant or malicious transmitters of the tradition. By eliminating all that conflicted w ith reason and sound tradition (as understood by such men as Kahn Singh) one might hope to are
restore the pristine Rahit. If in fact this
was Kahn Singh’s hope
it
was doomed
to certain dis-
appointment. Quite apart from the problem of distinguishing sound from spurious tradition there was the generally unsystematic form of the ex-
and the patchy nature of the material which they actually presented. No existing rahit-nama, purged or marginally supplemented, could satisfy the Singh Sabha reformers’ insistence on a clear definition of Khalsa identity. Only a new statement would meet the need. A new rahit-nama had to be produced, one which would give clear and systematic expression to the Rahit as preserved in historical documents and sound tradition. This recognition produced the third response to the problems posed by the extant rahit-namas, one w hieh was eventually to prove definitive tant rahit-namas
for twentieth-century purposes.
A
first
attempt was made
in the years
1910 to 1915. (Concentrating on what were perceived to be appropriate
endeavored to produce acceptable rubrics and procedistinctively Khalsa ceremonies, fhe result of this attempt
Khalsa rituals dures for
it
was issued in the latter year as Guramat Prakds Bhdg Sauskdr, w hieh incorporated Rahit injunctions within suggested orders
a
work
for var-
ious rituals.
Following
its first
publication the manual achieved only a limited suc-
was soon deflected by the Akali agitation of 1920-25. This campaign produced the Shiromani Ciurdwara Parbandhak Com-
cess and interest
68
WHO mittee or
SGPC
IS
A SIKH?
(chosen bv a general Sikh electorate to administer the
principal gurdwaras)’^ and
was the SGP(^ which
it
initiated the next
produce an agreed statement of the Rahit. In 1931 it resolved commission a new rahit-nama. Although a sub-committee appointed
effort to
to
for this
purpose had produced
postponed ally (
I
final
a draft
approval until 1945.
published bv the SGP(^
within
The new
a series
of delays
rahit-nama was eventu-
1950 under the
in
vear
a
title
Sikh Rahit
Maryada
he Sikh (>)de of Conduct). Sikh Rahit
Maryada
is
not a model of clear organization nor of coherent
presentation. In spite of
of haste and
it
leaves
its
lengthy period of gestation
some important
it
shows
signs
issues insufficiently defined. Its
primary division of the Rahit into “Personal Discipline” and “Panthic Discipline” is difficult to defend, and the all-important question of fundamental authority remains unanswered. Ultimate authority
is
plainly
declared to be the dual right of (iranth and Panth, but radical ambiguity persists in that the translating of mystical authority into actual decisions remains only partially defined. Moreover, as
beginning of than
a
this chapter,
code for
all
plying that there
is
it
is
who might
a
at
the
statement of Khalsa orthodoxy rather
regard themselves as Sikhs, clearly im-
an approved Khalsa style and that alternative Sikh
identities are ipso facto unacceptable, d'his, is
we noted
not explicitly declared to be the case.
As
\\
it
should be emphasized,
ith the
problem of
practical
authority the nettle remains ungrasped.
Maty add has so far stood the test of time remarkably well. It has run through numerous editions, it and it has absohas admitted very little in the wav of amendment, In spite of these shortcomings Sikh Rahit
no rivals. I he S(JP(^ continues to issue it, both in its original Punjabi and in Knglish translation; and if a Sikh seeks an answ er to any problem of personal observance or Khalsa ritual Sikh Rahit Matyada is the rahit-nama to which he or she is likely to turn. I lere care must be taken not to exaggerate its importance, d'he answers to such questions will more commonly be sought orally from a Sikh with a reputation for lutely
some circumstances, they may be ascertained by opening the Guru (iranth Sahib at random and using it as an oracle. If, how ever, the appeal is to be made to a rahit-nama Sikh Rahit Maryada learning or piety, or, in
will
normally supply the means. In the pages of
be found answers to
many
this brief
manual
will
of the standard t|uestions, and there can be
no doubt that it> has significantly contributed normative orthodoxy.
69
to the
maintenance of
a
W
Does
HO
IS
A SIKH?
then follow that Sikh Rahit Maryada has succeeded in captur-
it
ing the substance of the historical Rahit and that diligent reference to
make
answer to the cjuestion of who is a Sikh? Some will insist that the answers to both of these tjuestions should be affirmatives, and given its regular imprimatur it mav be assumed that this remains the official view of the SCiPC. Should we agree? It mav be regarded as impertinent for an outsider to question these answers, and such a response would indeed by justified if the questioning were to suggest that the outsider is telling Sikhs what pages will
its
possible to produce a sufficient
it
thev should believe, d'here are nevertheless questions w hich should be raised before final conclusions are
drawn.
In the sincere
hope that these
questions will be regarded as neither impertinent nor irrelevant
now
and others d he is
first
relate to the historic
I
development of the Rahit
its
w
hich
is
bound
actual nature of the Rahit,
answers.
hosc
who
to invoke differing beliefs
and differing
beliefs
w
ill
one
set of
produce different
must be
Gobind Singh
answers. At the other extreme those
who
perceive
the mutating product of an evolving societv will give a different
Others, simultaneously attracted to both view
s,
will
It
concerning the
believe that the substance of the Rahit
traced fullv and directlv to the intention of CJuru offer
will
contemporarv application. question concerns the origin and eonstancv of the Rahit.
to
question
a
Some
put them.
I
will it
as
set.
endeavor to find
a
compromise w hich accommodates both the (iuru’s autonomous purpose and the infiuence of external pressures.
The question leads back to the conflict between traditional scholarship and rationalist historiography w hich we noted in the third chapter, d hose w ho subscribe to the unvielding, uncompromising varietv of traditional scholarship will insist that the essence of the Rahit, in all its
fundamental features, was present
Ciobind Singh and that in I
1708.
I
it
in
the intention of Cdiru
must have been promulgated before
he actual sources make this
\
iew
complete his death
verv difficult to sustain.
he variant versions of the Rahit which appear in the earlier rahit-na-
mas
clearly indicate that
much
of the Rahit crvstallized during the course
of the eighteenth centurv and that a fullv-developed version able until
we move
is
not avail-
into the nineteenth centurv.
none of the major elements was promulgated prior to the (iuru’s death, nor that the emergence of a recognizable Rahit w as delaved until the end of the eighteenth centurv. W hat it does suggest is that a process w hich was alreadv under wav bv I
his
is
eertainlv not to suggest that
70
WHO
IS
A SIKIH
1708 continued to operate through succeeding decades, generating in
response to eighteenth-century pressures several of the elements feature prominently in the traditional Khalsa Rahit.
\\
hieh
These elements were
subsequently purged, supplemented and restated during the period of the Singh Sabha reform
movement,
late in
the nineteenth century and
early in the twentieth, d he reforming process eventually produced the
Rahit as
we know
it
today.
1
laving thus evolved over a lengthy period
contemporary pressures and producing the new emphases which progressively remold it. it
continues to develop, responding slow
ly to
There are actually two separate issues involved tion of Rahit
in this general
ques-
One
development, though the two are intimately related.
concerns origins and the other sequence:
From w here
did the various
w hen did they variously enter the Ranth’s conventions, thus becoming features of the orthodox Rahit? Linking the two is the tjuestion of cause: \\ hv did particular items become features of Khalsa items come, and
belief
and practice?
Some
items are easily explained, in terms either of origin or of timing
and occasionally the practice of
no problem
in
terms of both. The strong rahit-nama insistence on
nam simaran
is
an example of
a feature
w Inch presents
The devotional discipline had been central to the teachings of the Ranth ever since the time of (iuru Nanak and it has retained its eminence through the peri(Kl of rahit-nama grow th. There are certainly
w
at this level.
problems
to be
encountered w hen one proceeds to ask
w as understood by such terms
hat
as
nam
simarati or
nam
just
japan at
and by different people. This opens up a new range of which must be immediately put aside at least for now. For pres-
different times issues
ent purposes
it is
sufficient to note an unquestioning acceptance of
some
form of nam simaran as a primary feature of the Rahit at all stages of its development. It is a feature which illustrates one of the early roots of the Rahit and also its long-term continuity. Other major items are less easy to identify in terms of origin, cause or sequence. The patlj kakke or Five Ks provide a conspicuous example, one to which drew attention during the earlier discussion of tradition in chapter 3. The verdict of modern tradition is clear and wholly unambiguous. .\ccording to modern belief the Five Ks were introduced I
as a
primary and essential feature of the Rahit
at
the inauguration of
the Khalsa in 1699. .\s such they derive directly from the deliberate intention of Ckiru (Jobind Singh, a purpose in
w hich
is
to be explained
terms of the Ciuru’s determination that never again should his Sikhs
71
WHO l)c
able to conceal themselves.
IS
A SIKH?
This tradition
is
called into serious ques-
tion l)v the testimony ot eighteenth-eenturv sources. kes (the
uncut
hair) there
W ith
emphatic agreement that
is
regard to the
this feature
is
a
mandatory recjuirement for all Sikhs ot the Khalsa, and there is also repeated emphasis on the obligation to carry a sword.’” I'he other three items, however, are much less certain and there seems to be no doubt that the actual concept of the five-k status belongs to a period well into
the eighteenth century.
d his conclusion contributes something to our understanding of the
sequence without individual is
Ks or the reasons
no cause
w
may
for their introduction into the Rahit.
to c|uestion the tradition that (iuru (iobind
be visible and
his Sikhs to
tablished
anything about the actual origins of the
telling us
ithin the
it
(as
seems
I
here
Singh wanted
was formally esthe traditional answer
likely) the kes
Rahit during his lifetime
well be a correct one as far as this particular item
is
concerned.
must be emphasized, concerns the induction of the practice into the Rahit, not its actual origin. It still leaves open the strong possibility that its origin should be traced to the Jat custom of leaving the hair uncut, a possibility which may also explain some of the other Ks. By now it must surely be eyident that any adequate analysis of the historical Rahit is bound to be an exceedingly complex task, and that there I
is
his,
it
still
a
long
w ay
to
go
in
terms of explaining
it.
Another interesting example is prov ided by the strict ban on smoking. dliis, as Gur Sobha makes clear, is an early entrant into the Rahit, but from w here did it come and why is it thus emphasized as an essential mark of the loyal Sikh? Although it is unlikely that concepts of health or hygiene w ill supply a convincing explanation we should note that the early rahit-namas do display a lively sense of the perils of pollution (ritual pollution, not environmental).
It
may
well be their un-
derstanding of pollution which supplies the essential clue to their
abhorrence of hookah-smoking. I
he treatment of Muslims by the early rahit-namas clearly suggests
that they
were regarded
as
Shigh Rahit-uamd the belief
is
polluting and in the case of the Chaiipa explicitly stated.
^'
It is
quite possible that
marked hostility which the rahit-namas show tow ards Muslims and all that mav' be associated
the smoking ban supplies an example of the early
with them, d'his feature
must
eat jhatkd
avoiding
all
meat
is
overtly expressed in the insistence that Sikhs
(the tlesh of an animal killed
w
ith a single
blow
),
contact with the haldl meat of the Muslims. Another prom-
72
WHO inent example
item which a
is
A SIK/ir
IS
the ban on sexual contact with
later,
more
sensitive generation
was
Muslim women to
(an
transform into
a
The hookah traveled eastw ards with Muslims and was w idelv used in Muslim societv. As such it mav well have been regarded as a distinctivelv Muslim practice and thus a candidate for prohibition of adultery).
proscription.
The actual origins of the hostility’ can presumablv be traced to the extended period of w arfare with Muslim authorities, commencing earlv in the seventeenth century but fought with particular intensity during the eighteenth. Injunctions which reflect this hostility could have entered the conventional behavior of the Panth at any stage during this The more settled conditions of the Singh Sabha period produced a weakened emphasis on anti-Muslim features of the Rahit, a muting process which has fitfully continued through most of the present century, d he events of 1947 1-8 fired old animosities once again, followed by a gradual subsiding of feelings; and for some at least the events of 1984 seem to have actually produced a cautious alliance between Sikhs and Muslims, each for differing reasons aimed at the central government of India. laving thus developed a reasonably plausible explanation for the ban on hookah-smoking we must acknowledge that there are other possibilities. It might be argued that the hcxikah was banned because it would reduce the alertness and mobility of Khalsa guerillas. Although the Muslim connection seems the more likely explanation, support for it must be tempered with an awareness of other options, (x)mpeting explanations serve to emphasize the complexity of the task which confronts anyone seeking to understand and explain the Rahit. period.
—
1
This discussion could be continued at great length, scrutinizing the
many them lem.
features of the traditional Rahit and seeking to explain each of in turn. In briefly
A
pursuing
it
1
have touched on
a
second prob-
major source for understanding the evobing Rahit must ob-
viously be the corpus of rahit-namas, supplemented by relevant refer-
and other early sources. If, however, the rahit-namas are to yield useful information they must be satisfactorily located in terms of time, place and purpose. I'his is still impossible to do in most instances. The problem has already been noted w ith regard to Our Sobha, though ences
in the gur-bilas literature
at least
it
tury and
is it
possible to locate that particular
seems to
raise
work
no serious problems
73
to
w
ithin half a cen-
as far as the interests of
WHO
author are concerned. In the case of the Chaupd Singh Rahit-numd
its it
A SIKH?
IS
is
possible to proceed
much
further, placing
the eighteenth century and associating
Brahman Sikhs w ho had 19).
That
is
a
lost a
it
in the fifth
it
with
decade of
family of disalfected
a
coveted influence within the Panth
very substantial gain, and so too
is
(p.
the firm location of
Sdnak Prakds and Silraj Prakds (see chapter 6). I'here are many problems to be overcome w hen dealing with Santokh Singh, not least the difficulties presented by his Brajthe works of Santokh Singh, author of
influenced Punjabi. interpret his
work
It
however,
is,
when
help
a substantial
seeking to
know that he was educated within the Niramala the Malw a region, and wrote during the first half
to
tradition, resided in
of the nineteenth century. Because of the contextual information w hich can be assembled w
ith
regard to the Ohuttpd Singh Rahit-ndnid and the works of Santokh Singh
such sources can yield valuable returns. But w hat can be deduced from the remaining rahit-namas, notably the brief verse versions
been so influential?
One
effective contribution
is
bound
to
must remain
be convincingly located
in
acknowledge that
limited, for
at
w hich have
present their
none of them can yet
terms of author, time or purpose.
leged origins can easily be set aside and this
is
a
necessary
I
heir al-
first step.
The Nand Lai of (iuru (iobind Singh’s retinue could not possibly have produced the naive
the Prahilad Singh/Rai if
we
w hich bear his name; and date w hich makes no sense
style of the rahit-namas
work ends w
ith a
are to believe the author’s claims concerning the circumstances
under which he recorded the CLiru’s words. manuscript evidence to support an early origin.
fhere
is,
moreover, no
’’
These and other features indicate that the verse rahit-namas must be
detaehed from their alleged origins. ever, that they
It
must be separated by
does not neeessarily follow a substantial distance.
contents of these rahit-namas are generally consistent
v\
ith
,
how -
The actual
an early stage
of rahit-nama development, a conspicuous example lieing the absenee of any clear reference to the Five Ks.
’’’
The problem remains, one of the many w hich demand attention the near future. Until
it
is
in
solved any comprehensive conclusion must
be deferred regarding the eighteenth-century development of the Rahit.
Also the precise origins of some very influential words must remain
unknown. Attention has already been drawn to the “riij karegii khalsa” couplet which occurred in the Pcinakhdh-ndnid and is recited in gurdw aras follow intj the conclusion of Ardas (the Sikh Prayer). It would be
74
WHO very helpful to
know when
tantalizing delay
IS
A SIKH?
w ere first eomposed. The same the two eouplets which precede “raj
these words
must apply
to
karega khalsa” in the regular Ardas supplement, d hese couplets appear in
an earlier form as separate parts of the Prahilad Singh/Rai rahit-
nama: guru khalsa manJahi paragat guru kJ jo sikh
mo
cleh;
milahu chahabi khoj inahu mahi lehu.
Accept the Khalsa
as Ciuru, for
The Sikh w ho w ishes
to find
it
me
is
the manifest
should seek
me
body of the (iuru.
in its midst.
aka! purakh ke bachau siun pragat chalayo panth; sahh sikhan ko hachati hai guru mauJahu grauth. I
he l^mth was founded
Fa cry Sikh
is
at
command
the
of Akal Purakh.
hidden to accept the (iranth as (luru.^^
would greatly assist our understanding these two couplets. It
In theory, of course, such
demic.
If
if
w e could
definitively date
problems can be regarded
the doctrine of the mystically-present (iuru
merely aca-
as
is
to be accepted
must follow that the (iuru’s guidance continues to be given. Phis in turn means that there is doctrinal sanction for the notion of an everit
developing Rahit. In practice
is
it
tradition of a fully-formed Rahit
not so easy.
(Aim’s
cumstances encounters such serious obstacles.
W ho
ithin the
This
respect,
and
will in today’s ciris
the third prob-
modern Panth.
possesses the right to determine the proper content of the Rahit
and thus is
w
because the
difficult
commands such enormous
also because the process of interpreting the
lem, the question of authority
It is
to define the
a routine
answ er
meaning of Sikh
identity? In a general sense there
to the question of authority in the Panth,
one which
few practicing Sikhs are likely to dispute, d he ultimate authority is the (iuru and the objective standard is the (iuru (iranth Sahib. Phis, however, returns to the doctrine of the mystically-present (iuru and, as
one which
we
most Rahit problems unsolved. Phe Adi (iranth provides little specific guidance on issues relating to the Rahit, and differences of opinion quickly emerge whene\ er the attempt is made to apply its general principles to partichave
just noted, the doctrine
is
in practice leaves
ular cases.
.Although no, orthodo.x Sikh questions the obligation to utilize the
guidance of the sacred scripture
seldom produce
clear,
in all
such issues the procedure w
incontestable answers.
75
Dependence on the
ill
in-
WHO dividual conscience
IS
A SIKH?
likew ise unsatisfactory as a
is
means of determining
basic principles. For certain personal decisions each individual can claim
Guru
responsibility (preferably in conjunction with a reading of the
Granth Sahib), but not
or normative practices of the Panth.
liefs
fundamental be-
for general issues affecting the
convincing answer, one w hich w
ill
he problem requires
I
more
a
involve an objective authority with
an acknowledged right to deliver specific judgments.
Two
them solving the Fhe first answer is
different solutions can be offered, neither of
problem
terms which will be acceptable to
in
all.
Shiromani (iurdwara Parbandhak (Committee possesses the authority to make such decisions. Democratically elected by adult Sikhs that the
Hying
in the
Punjab and neighboring
districts the
as the manifest expression of the Sarhat Khdlsd
(iuru-given right to speak with authority on cern.
It is
the
SGPC
which
issues Sikh Rahit
and
SCjP(> stands forth as
such
it
holds the
matters of panthic con-
all
Maryddd and
its
imprimatur
signals ultimate authority.
Phis answer will immediately
SGPC>
prompt
a
number of
objections.
represents, at best, only the Sikhs of
The
first is
that the
torate.
Phis excludes the yitally important Delhi constituency and the
equally important diaspora.
SGPC
A
second objection
is
its
elec-
that enrollment as a
depends on a prior definition of who is a Sikh, thus begging the most fundamental of questions. ^' Phis particular objection is further strengthened by the fact that the electoral definition requires each voter to testify that he or she abstains from alcohol. Some firmly reject this item as a part of the definition of a Sikh. Others who might be prepared to include it in an ideal definition acknolwedge it to be so widely disregarded in practice as to be meaningless. A third v
oter in
objection for
elections
many
is
that the
SGPC
is
too deeply involved in sordid
be acceptable as an ultimate authority for matters of faith
politics to
and behavior. It may wara funds, but it is
still
serve a purpose as the administrator of gurd-
far too
compromised
to act as a religious court of
final appeal. I
he alternative
bly of
all
is
the local sangat (congregation), either as an assem-
adherents or through powers delegated to five trusted
mem-
bers acting as Panj Piare. d his raises another set of objections. First,
who
decides the qualifications for sangat membership? Secondly,
w w
believe that sangats are
ill
hich, for
many
immune from
Sikhs, discjualifies the
cates the differences of interpretation
v\
who
the kind of political activity
SGPC? hich are
Thirdly,
bound
who
adjudi-
to distinguish
W 7/0 IS A
.S/A//?
one sangat from another? I'he Fanth would disperse into an ever-expanding array of independent congregations. Local customs would be formalized
\\
ithin each
group and the Rahit would
slip into
ever-deep-
ening confusion.
The immediate response to this prophecy of doom is that in practice it just does not happen that wav. I his implies the only possible answer to the problem. In practice the Panth has learnt to live w ith a radically uncertain theory of ultimate authority. Although the result involves constant stress there nevertheless persists a sufficient measure of agreed uniformity. 1 he consensus may suffer some slow attrition and an occasional upset, but at least its principal features survive. A major reason for their survival
is
the agreed insistence that tradition delivers a well-
defined model, and that no subsequent argument or decision can change that model.
Phis in turn helps us to understand
traditional identity
is
why
the defense of a
so important.
The absence of an executive authority with acknow ledged powers must ensure that certain issues will continue to trouble the Panth for periods covering many decades and sometimes centuries. Some of the issues are trivial matters, but bv no means all can be dismissed in this wav. Reference has just been made to the requirement that all who qualify as voters in SGP(> elections must swear that they are total abstainers from alcohol. Is abstinence an approved feature of the Rahit? Sikh Rahit Maryada specifically declares alcohol to be an offense, but where does one find the scriptural or traditional justification for this claim?^^ Justifications do indeed exist, but all lend themselves to alternate explanations and the question remains doubtful. It is common know ledge that alcohol is copiously consumed by many members of the Panth and few' of them seem inclined to apologize for the practice. Others insist that it is wrong and the issue remains undecided. Lor some the debate also extends to meat-eating. In the consumers rather than the abstainers
who
fhe influence of the Indian tradition
it
is
can claim the support of
Sikh Rahit Matyada, provided only that the meat haldl.'^^
this arena
is,
is
jhatkd and
is
however, strong.
not It
ensures that meat-eating continues to be controversial and that few of the consumers will touch beef, particularly in India.
Opinion hardens again when we return to the ban on smoking, an injunction which is widely upheld. Although the ban has moved from smoking the hookah to all forms of tobacco it remains relatively firm. Paradoxically the line drawn against smoking has held more securely
77
W
HO
IS
A SIKH?
than the emphatic prohibition of hair-cutting.
he
I
latter
an abso-
is
fundamental feature of the Rahit, one which clearly dates from
lutely
the seventeenth century and which no statement of the Rahit ever overlooks. d here are,
We
cut their hair.
however, many w ho claim the title ot Sikh and yet are finally brought to the most basic of all problems
of Sikh identity, one which has been with the Panth ever since the
founding of the Khalsa and which remains with Strictly speaking there are
who
ting their hair. All
Khalsa
initiation.
“take amrit")
to the present day.
two kinds of Sikhs w ho
observe the convention
Kes-dharJ Sikhs, regardless of
kes) are called
it
Those w ho do undergo the
become Amrit-dhan
refrain
from cut-
who
retain the
(i.e., all
whether or not they accept rite
of initiation (and thereby
Sikhs. VVhat this
means
that all
is
who
and that some Kes-dharis are also Amritdharis. Although there is no means of know ing what proportion are baptized Amrit-dharis it seems clear that they constitute a relatively retain the kes are Kes-dharis,
small minority of the total Kes-dhari eonstitueney. I
he situation becomes even more comple.x
who do
when w e
turn to those
cut their hair, for here there are three distinct varieties to be
noted. For one of the three the act technically amounts to apostasy and as
such
is
implicitly
condemned
in Sikh Rahit
and the
sins (the char kurahit) are specified
any of them four offenses a
baptized
Maryadd\ four grievous
initiated
who commits
Sikh
qualifies as patit (“fallen” or “renegade”).
The
predictably, the cutting of one’s hair.
This
means
who
cuts his (or
is,
member
of the Khalsa
(viz.
an Amrit-dhari)
first
of the that
one who should properly be ostracized loyal adherents of the Khalsa until the sin has been confessed
becomes
her) hair
a Patit Sikh,
by all and due penance performed. This
the strictly orthodox response. In
is
practice the level of disapproval ranges
and although some may
dom
feel
from outrage
strongly on the issue the
word
patit
is
sel-
heard.
In spite of this ambivalent response Sikh Rahit clear
to indifference,
with regard to the theoretical status of the
when
less clear
Maryada
is
relatively
Patit Sikh. It
is
much
dealing with the two remaining varieties of hair-cutting
Sikh, although one of the
two has been the subject of recurrent debate
within the Panth during the past century. This
is
the variety
known
as
Sahaj-dhari Sikhs. Such people will typically claim to be ardent ad-
mirers of the personal Sahib.
Their
actual
simaran teachings of
Guru and
loyal devotees of the
observance,
Nanak and
however,
is
Guru
limited
his early successors, d'hev
78
to
Ciranth
the
ndm
do not adopt
WHO the
names Singh or Kaur
IS
A SIKH?
as required b\’ the
Khalsa discipline and
al-
though they may well be devout practitioners of mt-nem (the daily rule) and regular visitors to the gurdw ara they are certainly not Sikhs of the Khalsa. Arc they truly Sikhs.^ If so, what is the purpose and special value of the Khalsa?
(Confronted by this problem the Singh Sabha reformers (specifically the
at
1
dhari.
It
Khalsa) fastened on
seems
a
particular
etymology of the term
likely that the first part of the
compound
sahaj-
originally re-
by (iuru Nanak,'^' condition w as sahaj and
ferred to the condition of ultimate bliss as described
One this
Nanak
of the words by
to describe this
evidently the meaning w hich should properly be read into the
is
compound
were those w ho sought the ineffable sahaj-avasthd in the manner indicated by (iuru Nanak. In other words they sought to attain the bliss of sahaj by means of ndni simaraa, without sahaj-dhan. Sahaj-dharis
the Khalsa discipline. (iiiru
meaning of the “easy” or “slow,” and the Singh
Nanak’s usage, however, involves
a specialized
The usual meaning of sahaj is Sabha theorv’ was that the term sahaj-dhan should be construed as “slowadopter” or “one who proceeds by easy stages.” fhe Sahaj-dharis were word.
thus to
l)e
treated as aspirants to full
membership of the Khalsa who manner they could theoretically
had not yet attained their goal. In this be accommodated within the Khalsa ideal.
I
hev could also be accepted
as loyal (if implicitly subordinate) allies of the true Khalsa.
d his conclusion was uneasily accepted by the compilers oi Sikh Rahit
Maryadd, their hesitation clearly indicated by the muffled and ambig-
The third variet)’ is completely ignored, though it actually poses the most serious problem of all. Fatits have always been few’ in number and the Sahaj-dhari identity seems plainly to be in rapid decline. The same cannot be said for Sikhs who cut their uous terms which they use.
hair without qualifying for either Fatit or Sahaj-dhari status,
who Those who
Sikhs
belong to
a
fhese are
category best described as “affiliated Khalsa.”
belong to this category occupy the extensive middle ground
betw een the formal Khalsa of the of the Sahaj-dhari.
Many w ithin
l^atit
it
Sikh and the overtly non-Khalsa
retain the Kes-dhari identity.
Others
cut their hair without renouncing the affiliation and these are the people
who
constitute the third variety of hair-cutting Sikhs.
Those w ho belong to Fatits
group should not incur condemnation as because they have never been Amrit-dharis; and because of their
inherited links
w
ith
this
the Khalsa tradition they cannot be treated as Sa-
79
WHO Many were onee
haj-dharis.
their hair retain the link
Khalsa
ideal.
IS
A SIKH?
Kes-dharis. Others
by virtue of
a
who
have always eut
family tradition of loyalty to the
Sikhs of this kind are partieularly numerous in countries
outside India, and although reeent events have slowed the trend
be expeeted to cjuieken again existing term deseribes
when peaee
it
ean
returns to the F\mjab.
No
them aceuratelv and we must aeeordingly use
the impreeise label of niona or “shaven.”
As w
ith the c|uestion
of Patit status the issue
is
one whieh
elieits a
who regard the Khalsa identity as the only aeeeptable answer the Mona style is altogether unacceptable. Some who adopt this strict view actually equate the Mona with the Patit, range of responses. For those
applying to both the same rigorous condemnation. Others regard the issue with uncertain
embarrassment, and many more
Mona
parent unconcern.
Sikhs themselves usually
retaining their Sikh identity, and
many
it
with ap-
insist that
they are
treat
of those living overseas affirm
by regularly attending a gurdw ara. If they are jats by caste the claim is usually an easy one to sustain. Others may find it more difficult, particularly those w ho belong to urban castes. In the case of their claim
the latter cutting their hair
may
well
amount
to returning to a
Hindu
identity. I
is
he issue
is
not one that can be put aside indefinitely. Although
it
unlikely to be resolved by a deliberate decision on the part of any
formal authority some form of resolution will
reflect the
practice
w
ill
bound
is
to
emerge, one which
increasintj influence of Sikhs living overseas.
Actual
determine w hat votes and decrees can never achieve. Phis
should not imply an inevitable dismantling of the orthodox Khalsa identity, a
a
mistaken conclusion w hich was draw n by
century ago.
Much depends on
many
British observers
the accident of future events and the
pressures which they will impose on the Panth.
One
final issue
may be
briefly noted.
to discuss the present circumstances
the subject of caste
is
commonly
W henever
meetings are held
and future prospects of the Panth
raised, particularly
if
there are artic-
young Sikhs present. Here too alien circumstances place much greater strains on many diaspora Sikhs, but it is a topic of frequent ulate
comment wherever 1
Sikhs discuss the nature of their faith and practice.
he situation seems to involve
ings of the
a clear
contradiction between the teach-
Gurus on the one hand and the
on the
and condemn caste the actual clear purpose. In terms of ritual and
other. V\ hereas the CKirus affirm equality
practice of the Panth denies their
practice of the Panth
80
WHO
A SIKH?
IS
dining customs the injunction to spurn caste
generally observed,
is
though caste gurdw aras are by no means unknow n, W hen it comes marriage arrangements, however, the old conventions seem to stand
al-
to as
firm as ever.
There are two possible solutions to this problem. in the belief that caste
For most
barrier.
such hopes
may
wrong and endeavor
is
this will
is
to persist
to breach the marital
not be easy in present circumstances and
may, however, succeed as may actually be forced on many groups of
well prove to
circumstances change and
One
it
illusory.
l)e
It
diaspora Sikhs,
The second option is to accept that caste in a certain sense can be a sound convention and that lovalt\’ to the (iurus actually demands this response.
It
should be remembered that the (iurus arranged marriages
ow n children w hich were in complete conformity with caste prescription. Does it not follow therefore that their
for their tional
tures
on caste have been
misunderstood?
partially
W as
it
tradistric-
not the dis-
criminatory aspect of caste to which they objected, the notion that some are purer that others
on one’s place
and that access
to spiritual
hierarchy? In
in the traditional
freedom w as dependent the gurdwara Sikhs are
obliged to renounce caste, but need they carry this obligation into aspects of their
life?
Shorn of
its
all
concern with privilege and pollution
caste can be accepted as a valued social stabli/xT,
one which ideally
retains notions of place without necessarily involving degrees of status.
42
Once
again the discussion has
perhaps ser\e as a reminder that the question
“W ho
is
a
become one of ideal types and this may for many people (including many Sikhs)
Sikh?”
is
not really an important one.
W ho
from the pious and the academic? Most Sikhs know that they are Sikhs without requiring a detailed analysis of the Rahit, That sort of response is sufficient for most people most of the time. really cares, apart
In a time of crisis, however,
it
answer and we should need
may prove little
present experience of the Ranth,
who
to be a
thoroughly inadequate
reminding that
An
crisis
is
indeed the
adequate answer can scarcely be
They may ask sympathetic questions and probe the initial responses which they receive, but the answer is not theirs to give. It ean come only from within the Fanth and it can never be a final one, (dianging circumstances will ensure that the, question “W ho is a Sikh?” must forever be asked and expected from those
stand outside the tradition.
never definitively answered.
81
6
The
Literature
of the Sikhs
w
IKNKX KR the question of Sikh literature is raised one automatically thinks of the Adi Ciranth. 1 his is entirely natural, d’he sacred yolume is of crucial importance in the Fanth, rex ered as no other Sikh scripture is revered and regarded as an authority vv hich none may question. As such it inevitably dominates any discussion of Sikh literature and this will be true of the treatment which follow s. Hav ing acknowledged its primacy, however, shall endeavor to curtail the discussion and turn to other works of importance in the field of Sikh literature. This procedure will be adopted because detailed accounts of the Adi Ciranth already exist.* Descriptions and analyses of supplementary Sikh literature are, by contrast, much more sparse and there is a danger that its importance will remain largely unrecognized. I
In addition to the .\di Ciranth
we
shall
accordingly examine the
Ciranth, the works of Bhai Ciurdas and Bhai his,
Lai, the janam-sak-
some of the works which were proSingh Sabha movement. A complete survey would also
the gur-bilas literature, and
duced by the
\and
Dasam
H2
THE LITERA TURE OE THE S/RHS include the rahit-namas, but because they have already been described
chapter they w
in the last
It
ill
be omitted from this one.
The Adi (iranth may be viewed from many different perspectives. occupies a position of great significance in the early development of
the Panth, serving as the principal repository of the (kirus’ doctrine
symbol of the Panth’s emergent identity. In the modern context it also serves a key purpose in terms of ritual, occupying the central position in all Sikh ceremonies. This role it fulfills not merely because it is the primary scripture but more particularly
and
also an important
because (iuru.
is
it
It
is
embody, in a strictly literal sense, the the “manifest body of the (kiru” and as such it is believed to
eternal
treated
with the most profound respect. In such circumstances one normally
abandons the term “Adi Ciranth.” thus receives the veneration of
It is
the “CTiru (iranth Sahib” which
Sikhs, the (iranth or book
all
which
incarnates the actual presence of the (iuru.
We
return to the
title .\di
(iranth
The distinction
students rather than as devotees.
whereas “.\di (iranth”
when we approach
a neutral title
is
is
the volume as
a useful one, for
“(iuru (iranth” or “(iuru (iranth
Adi means simply “first” or “original” and has been used to distinguish the volume compiled by (iuru Arjan from the later Dasam (iranth. For historians, philologists and theologians it is a treasure-house which has yet to yield the full store Sahib” imply
of
its
a confession of faith.
w hich concern
riches. In the areas
resources have been a variety
little
of reasons.
richness of
its
It
the difficulties which will
may
it
may
from an exaggerated fear of be encountered, or perhaps from an inade-
difficulties associated
are certainly not problems
be an ignorance of the
also derive
tjuate recognition of the Panth’s importance.
major
its
tapped, a neglect w hich can be attributed to
10 some extent
contents.
scholars of these disciplines
w
ith
Fhere are indeed some
the text of the .\di (iranth, but they
w hich should
inhibit attempts to analyze
language or trace the doctrinal developments w hich
Fhe history of the Adi (iranth are concerned, but unclear
w
ith
is
it
its
presents.
relatively clear as far as
its
origins
regard to the subsequent history of the
According to well-founded tradition the original version was recorded by the famous disciple Bhai (iurdas, acting as amanuensis for (iuru Arjan.’ d'he task was performed in Amritsar over a period extending from 1603 into 1604. As a major source lor his new
original manuscript.
scripture (iuru Arjan for (iuru
Amar Das
is
said to have used an earlier collection
(the so-called (ioindval pothJs).
83
compiled
During the seven-
THE LEEERM'L RE OF THE S/RHS tecnth and eighteenth centuries, however, the actual location and treat-
ment of the manuscript is obscure. IVadition maintains that it was stolen largobind and a disappointed asl)v Dhir Mai, the grandson of (diru pirant to the succession, (dim (iobind Singh subsequently asked for it I
(dim and when his request was refused he is said to have produced his own copy by dictating the entire cono the original text he added compositions by his tents from memorv. egh Idihadur, and perhaps a couplet of his father, the martyred (dim to be returned to the legitimate
l
l
o\\ n.
means that the later recension containing the works of the ninth (dim was thus created bv (dim (iobind Singh. he original version is know n as the Kartarpur /;/> (“volume” or “recension”), so-called because Dhir .Mai and his successors lived in the small tow n of Kartarpur near Jalandhar. The version atIf
the tradition
is
to be believed
it
I
tributed to
recension
(dim (d)bind Singh
is
the
is
called the
Banno version which
Damdama
\
bJr.
third
tradition locates chronologically
between the other two. t radition stoutly upholds the claims of the concordant Kartarpur and Damdama versions, rejecting Banno w ith equal firmness. Because of its deviant reputation the latter is also known as the khan hJr (the “brackish” or “spurious” version). .\n alternative explanation derives the name from Khara, the village from which Banno is said to have come.
Damdama
apparently agrees with Kartarpur
only the compositions of Cdiru
may perhaps
be the work of
as the “authorized” yersion text. terial
l
in all respects,
adding
egh Bahadur and the couplet w hich
Guru Gobind
Singh.
.\s
such
it is
and printed editions reproduce
its
accepted received
Banno, diverging from the other two, incorporates additional maw hich the “orthodox” recensions lack."^ This difference raises a
problem which must be discussed later. Although the Banno version raises a serious textual problem
it
does
nothing to disrupt the remarkably consistent structure of the .\di (iranth.
W hen
(iiiru .\rjan dictated his scripture to Bhai
Gurdas he followed
a
well-defined pattern, conferring on the collection a regular organization
w hich
seldom breached, fhe .\di Granth begins w ith an introductory section containing works which serve a liturgical purpose; and it concludes w ith an epilogue comprising a group of miscellaneous w orks w hich is
evidently failed to find a place in the middle section.
It is
this
middle
which supplies both the bulk of the collection’s contents (more than ninety percent of the total) and also its distinctive structure. section
84
THE LITERA TURE OE THE SIKHS I
he basic division of the middle section of the Adi (iranth
ragas or metrical
modes
of thirtv-one). Each raga
(a total
varietv of
hvmn
Each of these
to the longer.
subdivided according to author, the
hymns
and those of (iuru Arjan appearing
last.
of
the shorter
classifications
further
is
Guru Nanak coming
W orks
into
then sub-
is
w orking from
divided according to the length of compositions,
is
first
attributed to authors
other than the (iurus (the so-called Bhagats) are grouped
at
the end of
each raga. Amongst the Bhagats of the .\di Granth the most prominent figure
Kabir, followed bv
is
\amdev, Ravidas
(Raidas),
other poets whose works match the doctrinal concerns of I
and various
Guru
Arjan.
he Adi (iranth thus provides one of the major collections of Sant works
and significant use has been made of its Kabir material bv scholars terested in the development of the Kabirian tradition.^ In terms of language the
Adi (iranth presents an interesting
one which predictable covers
in-
varietv,
range of linguistic usage but which
a
nevertheless sustains a sufficient degree of uniformitv to justifv the use
of a single collective term, (ihristopher Shackle cautiouslv labels this
Language of the Sikhs” (SLS). In so doing he stresses the “mixed character” of the Adi (iranth language, a result of draw ing on “a varietv of local languages and dialects, as well as incorElsew here, however, porating a good manv archaic forms and words. collective “the Sacred
he identifies mit
a
a linguistic
pattern
w hich
is
sufficiently consistent to per-
simple diagram.'
d'his
diagram should be viewed
in
geographical terms,
w ith
Professor
fhe football designates the “core” and substantial bulk of the collection, with only minor supplements represented in the three outliers. W ithin the core the thick arrows mark a progressive development in historical as well as geographical (or geo-linguistic) terms. Beginning with the Punjabi of (iuru Nanak’s Japujih progresses through the W estern Hindi of Guru .Vrjan’s Shackle’s football seen as covering the Punjab,
Sukhwanf, eventuallv reaching the Braj of (Liru
Fegh Bahadur,
period covered extends from the beginning of the sixteenth centurv
((
fhe iuru
Nanak) through to the beginning of the seventeenth centurv ((iuru Arjan), and onwards to the middle of the same centurv ((iuru fegh Bahadur). .Although this period of development covers one and all
but the
turv and a
a
last
contribution
(a
verv small one)
falls
a half
centuries
within a single cen-
corqparativelv narrow’ linguistic range. .\s such
it
represents
Punjabi/U’estern Hindi version of Sant Bhasa, the “language of the
85
THE IJTERA TL'EE OF THE SIKHS [HINDUISM]
[ISi.AM]
CLASSICIZINXi
Sahaskriti
'Forki^
RKCilONALIZINX;
The
lingtiisfic
Sants.” Sant Bhasa (also
pattern of the Adi Oranth
known
as
Sadhukari) served as
a lingua tranea
for the
Sant tradition from whieh (jurniat emerged.*^ There
words,
a signifieant
degree of linguistic uniformity
w ithin
is,
in
other
the Adi CTanth,
one which covers the works of the Bhagats as w ell as those of the Coirus. Anvone who knows the Ciurmukhi script and has learnt to read Sant Bhasa should have
Adi Granth.*^ The three tinv
little
diffieultv in
understanding most of the
diagram are their language. Torki (Indo- Per-
outliers represented in Professor Shackle’s
interesting for their content as well as
and South-V\ estern (Multani) forms are used when Muslim doctrines are invoked or a Muslim audience is addressed. Fhe first of these sian)
linguistic usages involves
an appeal to
a classical ideal
the third outlier. In the case of Sahaskriti, however,
and so too does it
is
the
Hindu
which is addressed.’^ fhe core takes its place within the grid established bv the outliers. It is much closer to Hindu tradition than to Islam and in linguistic terms it occupies a regional location. The linguistic pattern identified bv Professor Shackle is also highlv suggestive with regard to the doctrines of the Adi (iranth. Here too w e encounter diversitv w ithin a generally consistent frame. It is a diversitv whieh develops as one (iuru succeeds another, vet without anv suggestion that a later (iuru has transgressed the bounds set bv his predecessors. As we have alreadv seen, the fundamental message of (iuru tradition
86
THE /JTERA Ti'RE OF THE Nanak
is
the divine
SIE//S
on the (iurus whose
that liberation can be achieved only through meditation
Name.
I'his
remains the message of
all
works appear in the Adi Ciranth, but it we limit ourselves to this single statement w e shall do them serious injustice v\ ith regard to the diversity which they present. The diverse styles offered bv Nanak’s successors range from (iuru Angad’s pithy couplets and the eminently simple declarations of (iuru Amar Das to the music of (iuru Ram Das. Most prolific of all the (iurus, Arjan covers a w ide span of human experience and related doctrine. In marked contrast (iuru l egh Bahadur stresses the theme of suffering and the imminence of death." fhe Adi (Jranth is both one and many. On the one hand there is little that fails to fit a single, consistent doctrinal pattern. On the other there is a variety which serves to stress and illuminate different aspects of the pattern. It is a pattern which w ill be very familiar to those w ho are acquainted w ith Sant doctrine, and it offers an exposition of that doctrine w hich no other collection can match." The doctrinal consistency of the Adi (iranth is, like the beauty of so much of its poetry, something that neither the textual problems nor neglect can destroy. 1 here are, however, two textual problems which should be noted, and likew ise two varieties of neglect. Although the two textual problems deserxe close scrutiny they w ill not receive it here, mainly because there is little progress to report on descriptions of both problems which were published more than a decade ago. shall accordingly limit myself to brief notices of these two textual issues." The first issue concerns the existence of the two (ioindval pothJs and (if in fact the two volumes did exist) the extent to w hich they w ere used in compiling the Adi (iranth. The claim that Ciuru Arjan had access to such a source is entirely plausible and arguably the compiling of the Adi Ciranth becomes much harder to understand if we dismiss it. 1 he tradition w hich describes the origin of the pothJs during the time of (iuru Amar Das is likewise plausible and to some extent it is supported by claims that the actual volumes still exist." By itself, however, a plauI
sible tradition
is
inadequate, d he reliability of the tradition needs to be
examined and if the artifacts actually exist they should be brought to light and duly analyzed. Neither need has been met in the case of the ( Joindval pothJs and until both tasks have been satisfactorily performed the tradition must be regarded w ith some skepticism. The second issue is also stalled and no progress w ill be possible until
S7
THE IJTERATi’RE OF THE SIKHS scholars secure access to the manuscript in Kartarpur
which
tradition
holds to be the document actually written by Bhai (iurdas. I'he script, as
we
manu-
have already noted, disappeared during the seventeenth
century. In 1849 the annexing British discovered in the custody of the
Lahore court
a
manuscript which was identified
original. 4'he large path!
as the
Bhai (iurdas
had evidently been delivered to Lahore
1830
in
by the successor of Dhir Mai, and having been satisfied that Dhir .Mai’s descendants were indeed its legitimate owners the British restored the manuscript to Kartarpur.'’ C>arefully guarded by the Kartarpur family it has remained unexamined ever since, apart from a period of brief access which occurred in the mid-194()s w hile its ow nership was subject to litigation.'^ Lhe volume is displayed once a month for the purposes of darkin, but actual examination of the text .\
is
not permitted.
problem of considerable significance
textual
parison of the
Banno recension with
tents of the Kartarpur manuscript.
Banno recension may
is
indicated by a
com-
reports concerning the actual con-
This comparison suggests that the
actually represent the original text inseribed
bv
Lhe theory allows that the Kartarpur manuscript may well be the document recorded bv Bhai Gurdas, but adds that if this is indeed the case the original version has subsequently been amended bv obliterating occasional portions of the text. l he evidence for this hy pothesis is bv no means overw helming, but a prima facie case for investigation certainlv exists.' Until the Kartarpur manuscript can be properly examined the inquiry must be postponed. Bhai Gurdas.
Lhe two
varieties of neglect also require little
indicated in passing
is
comment. One already
the notable lack of attention which the .\di Granth
has received from scholars outside the Punjab and from university teachers
responsible for courses dealing with sacred texts.
haps seem more surprising. actual contents of the .\di
munities where Punjabi
is
W ithin Granth
The second may
the Panth itself is
very limited.
know ledge of the In overseas com-
beginning to give w av to English as the
mary language of communication
this feature
is
per-
pri-
becoming even more
pronounced. This should certainlv not suggest, however, that reverence for the
sacred volume
showing any sign of diminishing. It remains the “manifest body of the (Liru” and as such it continues to receive appropriate gestures of devout respect. Strictly speaking its mere presence transforms a room or building into a gurdwara and certainlv no gurdwara w ill be w ithout at least one large copy, reverently wrapped in expensive is
SS
THE LITERATI' RE OE THE SIKHS cloth and installed under a canopy. All
pected to touch the floor
and none
may
sit
on
\\
ith their
who
enter a gurdwara are ex-
foreheads before the sacred volume,
a level higher than the lectern
on which
it
is
placed.
At appropriate times during a service of worship hymns are read from the book w ith great reverence, the actual pages meanw hile being protected from contamination bv means of a whisk. Most of the remainder of a regular service consists of kirtan (the singing of hymns from the same scripture). In a gurdwara it is customary for kirtan to be led bv a group of three singers {ragis), with other members of the sangat joining in the singing as
they
feel inclined.'^
The (iuru (iranth Sahib also occupies the central position in other Sikh rituals. If specific guidance is required for any purpose the sacred volume should be opened at random and the first hymn beginning on the left-hand page should be read for
named
\\
hatever help
it
may
give.
W hen
opened at random and the name which is chosen should begin with the same letter as the first hymn on the randomly-chosen left page. .\ wedding conducted in accordance with the Anand rite must take place in the presence of the (iiiru (iranth Sahib and the actual marriage is performed bv having the couple walk around the volume four times. A funeral should be accompanied bv the singing of hymns from the Guru (iranth Sahib and followed bv a complete reading of the entire scripture.*^ (Complete readings of the (iuru Granth Sahib are a prominent feature of the Panth’s life, performing a valuable social function while emphasizing the importance of the sacred scripture as a key denominator of the Panth’s identity. For special occasions an “unbroken reading” {akhaud path) will be conducted by a relay of readers, a task which oca child
is
to be
the
volume
is
similarly
(Complete readings
cupies approximately fortv-eight hours,
be spread over longer periods, as
Such readings
little
may
also
week or as much as a year. mark occasions of grief or joy,
as a
{sddhdrati path) are held to
or in order to secure divine favor for a particular undertaking. Relatives, friends and acquaintances are
the bhog
commonly
invited to be present during
ceremony with which the complete reading concludes,
partic-
ularly in the case of an akhand pdth}^
d'he Adi Granth
is
the (iuru and as such
it
receives the honor
and
reverence which the personal (iurus would have received from their
During the eighteenth century the same respect was also bestowed on the second of the Sikh scriptures, the Dasam Ciranth. It too was regarded as the visibly present (iuru and thus received the same Sikhs.
89
A
HE IJTEEM LEE OE THE S/EHS
I
\
cneration.’"
That veneration has now diminished in the case ot the
Dasani (iranth and although
would place the
ranks as
it still
a
saered scripture few Sikhs
on the same
entire collection
level as the
Adi (iranth.
Supreme honor of that order is reserved for only a few portions ot the Dasam (iranth, not the volume as a whole. (Certain works attributed to (iiiru (iobind Singh are treated w ith the same respect as the hd ni ot' the Atli (iranth, but the Dasam (iranth as a whole is seldom invoked and little I
its
understood.
Dasam
he
(iranth
printed edition.
mav be
is
a substantial
W ithin The
distinguished.
work comprising
1,428 pages in
the collection four varieties of composition first
group comprises two works w hich may
be regarded as autobiographical or
at least as
attributed to (iuru (iobind Singh.
biographical, both of
These are Bachitar \dtak or
them “
The
W ondrous
Drama” (an account of the (iuru’s previous incarnation, early tills) and 'Aafar-ndma life, and battles w ith his neighbors in the Shivalik (a defiant letter addressed to the Kmperor Aurangzeb). The second clusI
works attril)uted to (iuru (iobind Singh jdp, Akdl Lstat, Gian Erahodh, and Sahad Hazdre). The third comprises two miscellaneous works {Savayye and Sastar ndm-mdld)\ and the fourth a collection of legendarv narratives and popular anecdotes. It is this fourth group w hich constitutes the bulk of the Dasam (iranth (more than eightv percent of the total). Like most of the remainder the works in this section are w ritten in Braj, one of the reasons w hich explains ter consists of four devotional
K
Dasam
the general neglect of the
Research on the that
Dasam
(jranth.*^
(iranth has been very limited, with the result
most of the major questions w hich
it
raises
cannot be answered
at
commence w ith the problem of its actual origins and indeed with the verv name w hich it bears. Most continue to assume that it must mean “ The Book of the Tenth [(iuru],” but some claim present.
that
it
These questions
should be construed as
“
The Tenth Portion” of
a
much
larger
work.'"^ f our theories are current
The traditional view
is
(iobind Singh himself.
mav
that the entire collection
A
Dasam (iranth. the work of (iuru
concerning the origins of the
second theorv
is
is
that the first three clusters
be attributed to (iuru (iobind Singh, but that the remainder must
have been the work of w
riters
w ho belonged
to his retinue.
third
interpretation maintains that nothing except Vaifar-ndmd can be safelv
attributed to (iuru (iobind Singh. collection derives
This interpretation agrees that the
from the following attracted bv the (iuru, but that
it
THE LITERATI' RE OE THE SIKHS should be read as
of ideas and attitudes rather than as
a refleetion
source tor his “authentic” compositions.
A
fourth theory agrees that
only '/Mfar-ndma has strong claims to authenticity, but restricts the
mainder
a
ot the third interpretation to the first three yarieties of
re-
com-
fhe legendary narratiyes and popular anecdotes obyiously had a clientele w ithin the Fanth, but they need not be interpreted as works which reflect the ideals and attitudes of the CJuru himself.’*^ position.
At
this stage
equately.
quite impossible to evaluate these four theories ad-
it is
There
is
now
popular imagination; and still
plausible
until
it
may
first
theory except in the
be noted that although the second
is
has been seriously weakened by a recent analysis of
it
Hach'itar 'Sdtak}^
done and
support for the
little
it
1 he essential analysis, howeyer, still remains to be is done it will be impossible to affirm any of the con-
tending theories with assurance.
As
far as the
ongoing
perhaps irreleyant and
life
this
is
of the Fanth
is
concerned such issues are
we
presumably the conclusion w hich
should
draw from the neglect which the Dasam (manth receiyes. yj/) Sahib and the Sai'ayye Amrit are firmly lodged in the regular pattern of daily deyotions {nit-nem). Akdl Lstat offers some magnificent poetry, Bachitar Sdtak helps us to understand the (iuru’s early wars, and '/.afar-ndma dramatically expresses his defiance. The remainder is, in effect, discarded and some [:K)tentially embarrassing questions are thereby ayoided. Difficult questions are
(iranth
is
bound
to be raised
if
Dasam
the bulk of the
carefully examined, for the kind of Furanic material
which
dominates the narratiye and anecdotal portion of the Dasam (iranth
is
scarcely consonant with the preferred interpretation of the Sikh tradition.
This policy
may
be explicable, but the neglect which
unfortunate. Locked within the
Dasam
the early Khalsa which at present
is
(iranth
lacking.
is
it
sustains
is
an understanding of
Although
this
understand-
w ill not yield to a mere reading of the yolume’s yarious contents it must assuredly emerge from their careful analysis. It cannot be claimed ing
Dasam
that the
suredly
it
(iranth alone will answer eyery question.
will not do.
W ith
This as-
equal certainty, howeyer, an analysis of
contents will insistently raise
many
its
of the issues associated with the
dcwelopment of the Khalsa, and any successful attempt to grapple with these issues will significantly adyance understanding of the eyoly-
early
ing Fanth. d he task
is
a
forbidding one, demanding a language back-
ground w hich few possess together with
91
analytical skills of a high order.
/'///:
It
w
ill
there
UTERM i RE
OE THE
SIR/ES
he an cxceedingK’ hard nut to crack, hut cracked
is
to l)e an
it
must he
if
adequate understanding of the crucial period covering
the late seventeenth and earlv eighteenth centuries.
The Adi (iranth occupies the supreme position in terms of sanctity, and if the Dasam (iranth is to he accorded its traditional status it should he treated as an equal. In practice this
not the case, except in gurd-
is
The Dasam Cmanth mav nevergurdwaras, and if not the actual equal
waras managed hv the Nihang Sikhs.
and read
theless he installed
in
must nevertheless he treated as sacred scripture.'*^ Oecupving a third level on the sacred literature scale come two collections w Inch offer none of the amhiguities associated w ith the Dasam
of the Adi (iranth
it
These are the works of the tw o distinguished Sikhs of the
(Jranth.
period, Bhai Ckirdas and I5hai
sacred scripture in the
Dasam
Nand
manner of
Lai.
(mru
Neither collection ranks
as
the Adi (iranth or (in theorv) the
Ciranth. Both, however, are explicitlv approved for recitation
in
gurdw aras and
as
an authorized Sikh canon.
as
such thev constitute
Bhai Ciiirdas, the earlier of the two w
a part
of
w hat w e may regard
w as a relative of the third Ciuru and closelv associated with all subsequent Gurus until his death in about 1633. Although his name was Ciurdas Bhalla he received the honorific
title
riters,
“Bhai” (Brother) and ever since he has been invariably
known as Bhai Gurdas. As we have alreadv noted, it was he whom Guru Arjan chose to act as his amanuensis during the original recording of the Adi Granth text. He w as also a missionarv and trusted assistant, serving his Masters in a varietv of responsibilities.
he was
a
poet and a theologian, leaving
a
Most
signifieantlv
corpus of works w hich
tra-
Cdanth Sahib.” There are two distinct collections w ithin the works of Bhai Ciurdas. W riting in Braj he produced a series of 556 poems in the kabitt stvle, little read for the same linguistic reason as the Dasam Ciranth.^' Much more influential are his thirtv-nine lengthv poems called vars. These also present problems, for their Punjabi has inevitablv dated and most readers require a glossarv to assist in their full understanding.^’ The attempt is well worth the effort. In addition to their beautv of expression the vars contain much information concerning the life and beliefs of the early Panth. As such thev provide an extensive eommentarv on the teaching of the Ciurus, together w ith source material w hich can be
dition regards as “the kev to the (iuru
verv useful to the historian of the Panth.
92
This latter feature
is
well
THE LITERATI' RE OE THE SIKHS famous stanza from \ ar 26 one w hich contrasts the differing policies and lifc-stvles of the sixth Ciuru and his predecessors; he earlier Gurus sat peaceably in dharamsalas; this one roams the land. Kmperors yisited their homes w ith rexerence; illustrated
by
a
,
I
this
No
one they cast into prison.
rest for his followers, ever actixe;
their restless .Master has fear of none.
The
earlier (iurus sat graciously blessing;
this
one goes hunting
They had serxants this
ho harbored no malice;
draxx n as bees to the lotus.
still
still
lies
subdued.”
xxe find reflected the criticisms xxhich Ciuru
dently attracted (represented in the
lines).
truth;
he truth stands firm, eternal, changeless;
and pride
loxxed
dogs.
one encourages scoundrels.
the Sikhs are
Here
ith
none of these changes conceals the
^ et
I
xx
xx
first
Hargobind
evi-
fixe lines of the stanza) fol-
by the dexout response of the loyal folloxx er (the txxo remaining If one should need ex idence of the change xx hich took place un-
der the sixth (iuru this stanza should certainly offer
Other portions deal
a
contribution.
\yith the essential doctrines taught
by the Gurus.
In the folknx’ing stanza external obseryances are gently yet effectixely
mocked: If
bathing for sure,
.\nd if
If
at tiraths
procures liberation frogs,
must be sayed;
likexx ise
the banyan
ith
tangling tresses,
groxving hair long sets one free.
the need can be serx ed by roaming unclad the deer of the forest
So too the donkey if
limbs caked
Saxed are the if
xx
xx
hich rolls in the dust
ith
cattle,
must surely be pious;
ashes can purchase salxation.
mute
in the field,
silence produces delix erance.
Guru can bring liberation; only the Guru can set a man free.” he way of life to be folloxxed by the dex’out Sikh Only
I
xx
the
stanzas such as the following:
93
is
described in
THE ITER ATI' RE OE THE SIKHS l.
Rise from sleep during night’s
and diseharge the
Speak w
ith
Obey
the
(iiirii
v\
ateh
diseiple’s threefold task.
courtesy,
practise virtue
last
w alk
in
humility,
by aiding others. by acting w
ith restraint;
sleeping, eating, speaking in moderation.
Live by your labour, performing honest
nexcr take pride Dailv join w
ith the
in status
toil;
or achievement.
eompanv
of the faithful,
singing (iod’s praises by day and by night.
Seek your joy
in the (luru’s
Word,
means w hereby he delights the soul. Abandon the ties of wordly concern; let your only hope be the Ciuru’s grace. the
In practice Bhai (durdas,
though deeply respected within the Panth,
seldom read or heard, d he same applies to Nand Lai Cioya who, because he wrote in Persian, is even less accessible to most members of the Panth. Although Nand Lai belonged to the retinue of Ciuru Gobind Singh his poems breathe a spirit very different from the militant piety w hich we usually associate w ith the tenth Guru. Phis may perhaps explain w hy his works do not appear in the Dasam (iranth. In terms of both spirit and doctrine they are much more in harmony w ith the div ine Name teachings of the earlier Gurus and it may perhaps be is
significant that
Nand
Lai’s
the Khalsa identity. His
name
indicates an unwillingness to adopt
two famous works
are his Dtvdn (a collection
of sixty-one ghazals) and his Zindagf-ndmd. I'he introductory ghazal of the Divan illustrates his characteristic style:
Only
me
the longing to worship Ciod has brought
why
But for the joy of offering praise
Happy
the
life
of the
man w ho spends
should
ever come?
I
his dav
into the world;
s
in
remembering
(iod;
W ithout
remembrance vv hy should w e linger, under the dome of Heaven? W ithout that remembrance life is death, remembrance alone can sustain me. W ithout that remembrance all that life offers is empty and futile for me. All that am, my heart, my life, offer in humble abasement. that
1
1
9
-/
THE LITERA TLRE OE THE SIKHS Faking the dust from the blessed
w ho has
No
led
traee ot
me
feet of the
one
to you.
you had
I
ever seen in
I
leaven above
or on earth below Until the desire to behold you. Lord, laid
awe and devotion. ithout the remembranee of
me
prostrate
in
W
(irant that deliverance soon that treed
d'his
is
1
mav meet mv
(lod, () (iova,
mav be
how can
I
ever live?
mine,
Beloved.^
removed from the spirit and style of the early Khalsa. It is generously open style, one with which the followers of many traditions would easily identify.
far
in fact a
different
he same openness
bv the janam-sakhis, the traditional narratives of the life of (iuru Nanak.^^ .Mthough it is impossible to sav when the janam-sakhi form first developed within the Fanth it can be safely assumed that anecdotes concerning Baba Nanak would have started to circulate as soon as his reputation began to develop and spread. The process is a natural one and story cycles of this kind were already a part of Punjabi culture. In the I\mjab anecdotes and anecdotal sequences were particularly associated with Sufi pirs and the janamI
is
also provided
sakhi narrators obviously use the Sufi style as a model.
individual stories directly
which we find
from the Sufi
store,
in the
Some
of the
janam-sakhis were borrowed
with only the name of the central character
The actual form itself also resemand some relevant details changed. bled the Sufi model, with several anecdotes assembled to form a coherent sequence.
was the process which produced the janam-sakhi form within the early Panth. Isolated anecdotes which circulated orally were evidently drawn together to constitute a rudimentary life-story, beginning with an auspicious birth and proceeding through the various stages of the Ciiiru’s life to his triumphant death. The sequence thus established grew and diversified. Kventuallv it produced several distinct cycles or traditions, each with its own distinctive pattern and doctrinal concerns. .\t some point (probably during the early seventeenth century) there began the practice of committing particular collections to w riting, thus enabling us to trace their development more precisely. I'he earliest extant manuscript is dated S.1715 (A. I). 165S) and subsequent manuPhis
scripts carry the style
through to the middle of the nineteenth century.
THE UTERA TI RE OF THE SIKHS
W
came
the arrival of the British
itli
the printing press and during the
next half-eenturv the stoek of reeorded aneedotes, stimulated by the
new teehnologv, expanded dramatieallv. This expansion dw indled during the tw entieth eenturv and although the janani-sakhi stories eontinue to be very popular there is now little sign of eontinuing grow th. At least six traditions or distinetive secjuenees ean be reeognized.'^*’ The
manuseript reeords
earliest extant
so-ealled beeause
a
version of the Bella tradition,
purports to be the work of
it
a eertain
w ho (iuru Nanak
Bhai Bala
(aceording to this tradition) was a regular eompanion of
During the past eenturv the Bala tradition has established a firm grip and it still dominates both the book market and the popular imagination. It is clear, however, that it was not the first tradition to emerge and ironically its original version w as distinctly hos-
during
tile to
his travels.
the legitimate line of (Jurus.
d hroughoLit the present eenturv the principal challenge to Bala dominance has aneceiotes
come from the Piiratau tradition, a structured collection of much favored bv the Singh Sabha reformers and used l)v
supplement the framework for his life of Nanak. fhis tradition, which nowhere mentions Bhai Bala, was more acceptable to .Macauliffe and his Singh Sabha associates, partly because it provided a more coherent sequence and partly because its miracle stories were .Macauliffe to
rather less grotesque than those of the Bala cycles. Just as Bald has a
firm hold on the popular imagination, so Purdtan dominates the writing
of respectable “biographies.”
standard account of the derives
its
shape and
Purdtan provides
a
its
much
more
need not mean that
it
life
It is
of of
Nanak w e
its
when we
read a
are reading a version
which
useful to
know
substance from the Purdtan tradition.
rational account of the
is
that
any closer
Guru’s
life,
though
this
to the actual events of his life than
Bdld competitor.'^’
The Purdtan tradition ean be regarded as “orthodox” in its presentation of the Guru’s life-storv and this doubtless helped to establish its credentials for the Singh Sabha writers and their successors, d he same can also be said for the Adi SdkhJs tradition, but the bulky Miharbdn Janam-sdkhJ
is
associated
w ith
the schismatic .Mina sect and as such
it
has always been regarded with suspicion. Evidence has recently been
produced
to
show
that the Gydn-ratandvalJ, a janam-sakhi attributed to
the celebrated eighteenth-century martyr .Mani Singh,
in fact a
prod-
from the early nineteenth century.^' d'hese but they normally do little to affect the actual
uct of the Ldasi sect dating origins can be significant,
is
96
THE LITER A TL RE OE THE SIKHS style of the typical janam-sakhi/^
I
anecdote from the composite collection know n as
Baba Nanak, haying he came to house.
\\
by a brief the IHO Jmiam-sMJ:
his style can be illustrated
that place, trayeled to another country. I'here
left
w here he noticed four pennants
a city
hen he asked
fluttering oyer a
for an e.xplanation the people told
marked the residence of
a
w ealthy money-lender. “He
him
that they
has a large hoard
of treasure which he keeps in four coffers,” they said. “1 he four flags signify the four coffers.”
Baba Nanak then approached the money-lender and asked him explain his pennants, “d he treasure w hich they signify
pany
me w hen
Nanak
1
him
tjaye
money-lender assured him.
die,” the
needle and asked him to return
a
w
ill
to
accom-
In response
Baba
w hen they both
it
reached Heayen. I
“1
he money-lender accepted the needle, but
low can
“How
take this needle
1
will
I
w
me w hen
ith
be able to return
it
1
later
die?” he asked himself.
He
to that facjir?”
Nanak and haying caught up w ith him he returned is
no sense
in
“If there
is
“how w
ill
my
keeping
no sense
you be able
in
it,”
all
his possessions
the needle. “There
keeping this needle,” answered Baba Nanak,
to take
le
I
ran after Baba
he said.
your four treasure-chests with you w hen
you die?” Instantly the money-lender begged forgiyeness.
he began to w orry.
realized the truth
and reyerently
returned to his house and haying giyen
away
he applied himself to the deyotional discipline w hich
Baba Nanak taught.
He became
a
Sikh and, liberated by the
(lurii’s
grace from the bonds of transmigration, he found true happiness.'^'*
This story illustrates seweral of the typical features of a janam-sakhi
anecdote. Baba
Nanak
there encounters a benighted indiyidual or yentional religion.
during his
yisits a particular place
some
and
representatix e of con-
discussion takes place, climaxed by
gesture or a miracle. (>)nyersion follows, the
tra\'els
new
a
symbolic
disciple begins to
Baba Nanak continues on his way. As transmitters of Nanak-panthi doctrine and conyention the janamsakhis hayc few rivals. In that most accessible of all forms (the simple, practice iiaw s'lmaran, and
interesting,
easily-comprehended anecdote) they repeatedly present Nanak
Supreme (Tiru and his message of nam s'lmaran as the one effective means of deliyerancc. .\lthough they have never been accepted as sacred scripture their immense popularity has conferred on them a maas the
97
THE LEEERA TLEE OF THE SIKHS jor role in the sustaining
tion.
and transmission
ot the
Nanak-panthi
tradi-
45
summarizing the signifieance of the janamsakhis we have speeifieallv referred to the Nanak-panthi tradition rather than to Sikh tradition in general. I'he distinetion is retpiired beeause It
w ill he noted
that in thus
must take aeeount of the Khalsa transformation and in this the janam-sakhis play no part, f or the Khalsa inheritance we must look he other elsew here. The rahit-namas provide us \\ ith one such source. the latter
I
is
mode
the
of historical presentation
known
as gur-bilas."^^
The term gur-bilds means “pleasure of the (iuru” and in a strictly literal sense it might well be applied to the janam-sakhis. In practice, howcN’er, it designates works which narrate the later history of the Panth in a style
molded by the
other words,
a
w hieh emerges from the
“heroic” style
Sikh history. Predictably
and (w
militant aspirations of the Khalsa.
ith particular
its
It
is,
in
heroic period of
products concentrate on (Kirii Ilargobind
emphasis) on Ciuru (iobind Singh. These w ere the
two warrior Ciurus, exemplifying in their own lives the ideals which were to inform the eighteenth-century Khalsa. The gur-bilas literature reflects these ideals and delivers a version of Sikh history which conspicuously embodies them. The earliest work w hieh can be regarded as a representative of the gur-bilas style
is
Bachitar Scltak, the account of the early
(iobind Singh which appears rative it
is
poem
is
in the
Dasam
life
of (iuru
(iranth. Because this nar-
traditionally attributed to (iuru (h)bind
Singh himself
not usually treated as an example of the “pleasure of the (iuru”
style.
It
does, however, breathe the authentic gur-bilas spirit, partic-
sword or describe the early battles fought by Ciuru (iobind Singh. It seems likely that Bachitar Scltak was the work of a close disciple rather than the Ciuru himself^^ and if this ularly those portions
is
correct the
The next
which
poem can
to
exalt the
certainly be regarded as the first of the breed.
appear was Sainapati’s Gar Sohhd or “Radiance of the
Ciuru,” variously dated 1711 and 1745. In this
work
particular emphasis
and divine authority of the Khalsa. A lengthy pause follow ed the composing of Gar Sohhd. Although chronic warfare greatly strengthened the Khalsa spirit and thus the gur-bilas impulse it also inhibited the actual production of literary work. The next example of is
laid
on the
the tradition ot the lite ot
role
is
Sukha Singh’s
Giir-hilds
DasvJn BdtasdhI, a heroic aeeount
(iuru (iobind Singh w hich w as completed
9S
in
1797.
Two
THE LITER A Ti’RE OE THE SIKHS w hich
other examples of the tradition
Koer Singh’s
are
also claim eightcenth-centurv origins
and Gur-hilds Chhevw Pdtasdhi appears, however, that both belong
Gur-hilds TdtasdhJ 10,
attributed to a poet called Sohan.
It
to the early nineteenth century/'^
w as the period before the middle of the nineteenth century which his was Ratan produced the most famous of all gur-bilas histories. It
I
Singh Bhangu’s Prdchtn Patith Prakds, completed
1841. Also within
in
same period there appeared the enormously inlluential Suraj Prakds of Santokh Singh. In his earlier \dnak Prakds Santokh Singh had followed the janam-sakhi style and this carries over to his accounts of the this
remaining (iurus
in Suraj
PrakdL 1 he treatment
enced by gur-bilas ideals and the
two approaches,
a
as
is
nevertheless influ-
such provides an interesting blend of
combination w hich dominates
much
of the
lit-
erature subsequently produced within the Panth.^*’
Arguably
is
it
of (dan Singh,
same mingling of
this last
st\ les
which appears
in the
works
of the traditional historians to exercise a significant
intluence on the receiyed yersion of Sikh tradition. Ciian Singh pub-
and installments of his I'avarJkh Guru Khdlsd (1 listory of the (iuru Khalsa) w ere issued between 1891 and 1919. In these works, howeyer, the stress has returned to the gur-bilas interpretation and Ciian Singh may appropriately be regarded as its last great lished his Pauth Prakds in 1880,
exemplar.^'
By the time of
has arrived and with of the Sikhs.
I
it
another significant
he Singh Sabha, as indicated
ment dedicated
many
earlier,
w as
a
reform mov e-
to the restoration of traditional Sikh values following a
period of apparent decay. for
Sabha moyement development in the literature
(iian Singh the period of the Singh
A
significant role
was assigned
of the Singh Sabha leaders were educated
to literature,
men who
believed
power of the printed word.^^ The Singh Sabha writers were in fact men who had been greatly iniluenced by the British presence in the Punjab, a presence w hich soon in the
delivered the technology for disseminating literature while progressively affecting the outlook of those responsible for
not
mean widespread abandoning
its
production. 4 his did
of traditional beliefs and attitudes.
The traditions were loyally retained, but they were subjected to reinterpretation in accordance with ideals exposed to the scientific and rationalist influence of W estern education. The result was a restatement of traditional beliefs, one w hich resolutely affirmed the mission of the
99
THE IJTERA TL RE OF THE SIKHS (iiirus but did so in
terms congenial to
a
generation enlightened by
contemporary notions of reason. f or \\ cstern readers the principal
M. A.
Macauliffe’s I'he Sikh Religion, probably followed
Sikhism: Its Ideals and Institutions.
been lific
felt
by Feja Singh’s
impact, however, has
I'he principal
within the Panth. First to emerge to prominence was the pro-
Ciiani Dit Singh, a leading
member
himself a Sikh of outcaste birth.
were
product of the movement has been
later
of the Lahore Singh Sabha and
Dit Singh’s booklets and pamphlets
followed by the weightier works of
Kahn Singh Nabha, and
men such
ir
Singh,
various lesser luminaries. .Meanwhile news-
papers and journals were developing a marked influence on I
as \
literate Sikhs.
hese publications were issued in Punjabi, English, and Urdu, thus
ensuring that
all
Sikhs
who
could read would have access to the
new
ideals.
In addition to the janam-sakhi
and gur-bilas
styles the writers of the
Singh Sabha period also inherited two differing traditions w hich had earlier influenced the interpretation of Sikh scripture. Fhese were the
and Nirmala traditions, the former stressing strict adherence to the sacred text and the latter venturing into \’edic interpretations. I'he Singh Sabha writers generally favored the Giani approach, but here too
(iiani
was
by intellectual ideals derived from Western sources. The combination was not always a satisfactory one, for there were features of the received tradition which the received tradition
proved
significantly modified
difficult to accept in the enlightened
days of the
later
Singh
was nevertheless a reinterpretation of very substantial importance which they achieved, one marked by a notable consistency. The proof of their success is the fact that Sikh scholarship and W estern perceptions of the Sikh tradition are still largely dominated by Singh Sabha interpretations. Although the intellectual achievement of the Singh Sabha has been a truly impressive one its dominance must eventually be lost. A century is long enough for any such movement to remain unchallenged and new approaches must supplant the old if our understanding of Sikh scripture and Sikh literature is to keep pace with intellectual developments in Sabha movement.
It
other parts of the academic world, fhis will not be an easy task. W'ell-
entrenched views are always
happens
to
difficult to dislodge
and when the tradition
be associated with deeplv-held religious convictions the
magnitude of the task becomes truly impressive. For some people, of course, there is no real problem. If the academic need involves nothing
100
THE LITERATURE OE THE S/RHS more than description fear
one which can often be discharged with little of indignation or offense. Literature, however, demands analysis it is
and so too does the Sikh tradition as a whole. (Challenging Singh Sabha interpretations will involve such a process and the welcome which it receives will not necessarilv be a favorable one.
101
7
Sikhs
Modern World
in the
TX
HOSE who know
year. For the Sikhs
India are well aware that 1947
it
was
was
a
traumatic
particularly devastating. All Punjabi
com-
munities suffered from the disorder and killing which preceded and
fol-
lowed independence and Partition in August 1947, but for the Sikhs the experience had a special significance. The Punjab was their homeland and the division of that homeland resulted in a total evacuation of the western portion. .Muslims could take comfort from the creation of Pakistan and Hindus from the new India. Sikhs inevitably cast their lot with India, but as lives
and land
a result of the
left in
1947 Partition they lost more than
Pakistan: the birthplace of
Guru Nanak and
the
numerous shrines associated w ith it were no longer accessible; the city of Lahore, Ran jit Singh’s capital and the place where the first Ciuru had suffered martyrdom, had likewise become foreign territory; Panja Sahib, the famous gurdwara situated between Rawalpindi and Peshawar, was far beyond their reach. It was a disastrous year and the scars are
‘
still
visible.
102
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERS W ORLD Migration was not it
had been
a
a
new
experience for the Sikhs, though previously
voluntary transter to
new
territories rather
than a forced
abandoning of the old. Many of the Sikhs w ho crossed to India after Partition belonged to families which had moved to the recently-developed canal colonies of Lvallpur and Montgomery districts late in the nineteenth century or early in the twentieth. Others had traveled overseas during the same period, most of them to return after several years but some to remain as the earliest representatives of the Sikh diaspora. Ik'fore examining the aftermath of Partition in the Punjab, the outlines of this movement overseas w ill be traced, a movement which is now producing new opportunities and new pressures within the Panth as a w hole. Sikh migration overseas is at once easy and difficult to explain.^ It begins with the enlistment in the Indian Army during the years following the 1849 annexation of the Punjab and particularly after the up-
showed increasing favor towards the recruitment of Sikhs and some of those w horn they recruited were subsequently posted to Singapore and long Kong. Phis rising of 1857-58. After the latter event the British
I
revealed a range of opportunities in
h.,ast
and Southeast Asia, thus
tiating the first stage in overseas migration.
It
ini-
also revealed a larger
world beyond the fringe of Asia, one which included Australia and North
America. \ enturesome Punjabis drawn to these distant places transmitted the news and the earnings which attracted others, thus setting the well-known chain in motion.
Those
who
participated in this process frequently claimed that their
principal reason for so doing
iSganhi or poverty.^ In reality they were
\\ 2
economic stratum of rural Punjab w hich could be descril)ed neither as wealthy nor as desperately poor. The wealthy had no need to seek overseas opportunities and the truly poor lacked access to the limited capital which such an enterprise demanded, d hose who emigrated came from an inseldom,
if
termediate
ever, truly poor.
I
vpicallv they belonged to an
level.
group with economic problems, fhese problems derived from such features as a falling water-table and the Jat practice of dividing a patrimony equally among all sons. Such a convention inevitably reduced some holdings to an unacceptable size and prompted the need to find supplementary resources. Social convention reinforced the need, for a diminished land-holding involved more than economic probIt
was, however,
a
103
THE SIKHS IS Icins.
It
also
MODEKS WORLD
rilE
reduced the means whereby
a
man
could discharge essen-
duties (such as the marriage of daughters) in appropriate style and
tial
thus endangered his all-important izzat (honor or self-respect).
means of meeting this need and overemployment supplied another. I hose w ho traveled overseas for
Military service provided one seas this
purpose invariably planned to return
most did
so.
Karnings were remitted
to the
home
Punjab and
to the Punjab,
in practice
w ith only
a
small residue retained for the simplest of living expenses. Debts could
thus be paid, additional land purchased, ters
new houses
built,
and daugh-
honorably married.
mere affluence was the primary objective, nor that the individual migrant was typically feathering his own individual nest. Money can be used for various purposes and the posPhis should not suggest that
session of property can service differing ideals. In the case of the Sikhs
w ho worked overseas during this early period an overriding concern w as the perceived need to maintain or restore izzat, a term w hieh only roughly translates as “honor” or “self-respect.” hzat was (and remains) a dominant ideal in Jat society and, to a lesser extent, amongst other rural castes of lesser status."^
I
together with such associated items as a
implements.
The
cern, particularly
dowry required
prime criterion, brick-built house and modern
he possession of land
is
a
same condaughter. The
scale of one’s hospitality also reflects the
on such occasions
as the
marriage of
a
for a daughter’s marriage provides another
example.
d he status thus acquired was one w hieh attached to the family rather than to the individual and decisions to emigrate overseas seem typically
and minor children seldom joined their migrant husbands or fathers, remaining within the joint family and (in the case of the women at least) living out their lives in the Punjab. Sons commonly joined their fathers w hen they were old enough to do so, provided that immigration rules still permitted their entry into the same country, d he pattern was one common to Hindu and Muslim Punjabis as well as to those w ho regarded themselves as Sikhs. In practice the Sikh group w as much the largest, even when allowance is made for those w hose “Sikh” identity was indistinguishable from that of their Hindu colleagues. W hen we talk about Punjabi emigration we are usually talking about rural Sikhs, most of them Jats. I he second-largest group (w ell behind the jats) consisted of outcaste Chamars. to
have been family choices.
1
his
much
difficult part
VV ives
of the process can be explained w ith relative ease.
comes w hen tracing the migrants
104
to their actual
I
he
homes
in
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERS WORLD the Punjab. \\ hen this travelers
came from
soon narrow
and Satluj
s
done
a varietv
it is
who
Indeed the focus traveled to
discovered that although the earliest
w ithin the Punjab the focus region w hich lies betw een the Beas
of locations
Doaba, the plains
to
rivers.
the Punjabis
is
New
is
even narrow
er.
An
analvsis of
all
Zealand prior to 1921 shows that an
overwhelming majority came from the three tahsils (sub-districts) which occupy the eastern corner of Doaba. ^ I his small area has been the heartland for all overseas migration from the Punjab, with the principal supplements coming from the areas which are immediately adjacent to it.
W hereas
the standard explanation for employment-seeking emigra-
Doaba it is much more difficult to explain why it should have applied w ith such force to that particular territory, leaving some other portions of the Punjab virtually unaffected. d his feature is not confined to the earlier wave of emigration tion can be easily applied to eastern
(the period extending
the emigration It
is
from the
w hich followed
187()s until the 192()s). It also applies to
W orld W ar
possible to determine precisely
11.*^
when
overseas emigration from
the Punjab began, but at least the pattern and direction are clear.
we
As
examples appear in Hast and Southeast Asia, establishing communities there which in some cases continue to the present day. fhose who moved into (>hina, the Dutch Fast have already noted, the
Indies,
earliest
and the Philippines
mained
in
left
few traces, but significant groups re-
Singapore, Malaysia and
Thailand.
There, as later in
Tiji,
they are to be clearly distinguished from the indentured population or
anv Punjabis ever accepted an indenture contract the numbers must have been exceedingly small and they included no Sikhs. All Sikh arrixals entered as “free” migrants. In Southeast Asia and Hong Kong former soldiers and policemen were often able to secure employment as guards and caretakers, creating a stereotype which still surits
descendants.
If
vives.
W hile
in
Hong Kong and
Southeast Asia l\injabis learnt of the two
was Australia and it was migration to Australia that came next. Mitkan (.\merica) was a more distant prospect and Punjabi migrants did not seek to reach it until twenty years after they had begun to enter .Australia. I'he .Australian phase, w hich commenced in the 1880s, provided work as hawkers and sugarcane cutters. It was a comparatively brief phase, for the colonial government of .Australia soon became alarmed at growing .Asian immitapu (islands) of Telia and Mitkan.
Telia
105
THE SIKHS IS THE MODEKS WORIA) 1901/ A small Sikh the east-coast banana-growing
gration and effectively legislated to block
communitv tow n of
V\
survives, concentrated in
still
oolgoolga,” but Australia has never again permitted Asian
immigration on
Meanw hile the
few of the Australia migrants had found to
New
example
Zealand. The
first to
make
Zealand was soon persuaded to follow its
earlier legislation
only after World action
New
about 1890 and were followed thereafter by
though tive
a
a significant scale.
Tasman Sea
in or
in
it
was taken
War
1,
when
was confined
their
w ay
across
the journey arrived
Al-
a small trickle.
.\ustralia’s restric-
to the Chinese.
It
was
the trickle began to swell rapidly, that
to block further arrivals
from
India.
the only attractive destination in the South Pacific.
^
This
left Fiji as
There the door
re-
were initiated in 1930.*^^ W ell before this happened the American door had been found open and had long since shut. As far as the Punjabis were concerned Mitkan was a single place with a single range of opportunities. W'hat this meant was that their destination was the west coast of North America where they could expect to find laboring opportunities (notably as lumbermen) in a developing new economy. The result was a movement of Punjabis into British Columbia, Washington, Oregon, and California, commencing soon after the turn of the century. (Canadian and United States authorities acted independently for the most part, but their prilicies proved to be very similar and both governments soon began the process of blocking entry. British Columbia was actually the principal destination and it was there that dramatic events were to unfold. It has long been believed that Punjabi interest in the possibility of migration to North America was initiated by the visit to Canada of a detachment of Sikh troops who passed through the country after pa-
mained open
rading in
until
London
measures to close
for
Queen
it
\ ictoria’s
Diamond
Jubilee in 1887.
If
was in fact raised bv a ceremonial contingent it v\as probably the detachment supplied for the coronation of Fdward \ II in 1902.'* The first Punjabi immigrants arrived in mid- 1903 when ten men landed in British Columbia, and in the year 1903-04 a total of about thirty men entered. From fortv-five arrivals in 1904-05 the number jumped to 2,124 in 1906-07 and within another year the total for the four-vear interest
period had passed 5,000.’*
The Canadian government took action early in 1908, promulgating an Order in (Council w hich required all immigrants to come on a “continuous journey” from their country of origin.'^ This stratagem effec-
106
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERX WORLD ended entry from India as no travel facilities existed for such a voyage. Attempts were made to meet or circumvent the requirements of the new policy, notably the 1914 arrival in \ ancouver harbor of the ship called the Komagata Maru. The authorities were able to frustrate most of these attempts, although the Komagata Maru incident involved considerable embarrassment and left an enduring memory. Wives and dependent children were admitted from 1919 onwards,'^ but in other respects Canada routinely refused Asian immigrants until after W orld tively
W ar A
II.
similar policy had
meanw hile been
applied in the United States.
Obstacles were introduced in 1910 and a blocking procedure was regularized in 1917. d he effect in each country
nant consisting of the few
and had chosen not
who had
was
to leave a small
rem-
entered while the door was open
to return to the Punjab, d'hose
who remained
in
Columbia could live normal family lives, though their isolation from both their homeland and the host society imposed great difficulties. For the remnant left in the United States (soon limited to (California) the impact of isolation was more serious. Both communities still survive (as do those in Australia, New Zealand and Fiji), retaining an identity distinct from that of immigrants w ho have arrived from the Punjab since World War II. British
One
other region to acquire a significant Sikh population prior to
World War
Here too the first beginnings go back to an Indian Army presence, but much more important w as the introduction of Indian labor to build the Fast African Railway. Fhis was II
was Fast
Africa.
done between 1896 and 1901, and the labor force included many Sikhs. I here w as, however, a notable difference distinguishing the Fast Africa
from Sikh migrants to other countries. I he latter, as we have noted, were predominantly Jats. For railway construction workers with artisan skills were required. Within the Panth those who belong
work
force
to artisan castes together constitute the distinctively Sikh caste of
comes
Ram-
no surprise to learn that a substantial majority Fhis feature was of the Sikh settlers in Fast Africa were Ramgarhias. later transferred to Britain follow ing the expulsion of Indians from Uganda bv Idi Amin in 1972. In the United Kingdom this group constitutes a garhias and
it
self-contained
both bv
its
Britain
is
as
community within
the Panth,
East African antecedents and the
last
its
its
closed identity defined
Ramgarhia
affiliation.
of the countries to be noted in this survey of early
Sikh migration, though
it
should be remembered that small numbers
107
A
THE SIKHS IN THE MODERN WORLD found their wav to
many
Although there were Indians
told.
nineteenth century the tatives of the tinv
Kingdom
first
in
the United
Bhatra caste
who
the
worked
arrived during the 192()s and also represented, but for the
the period of significant immigration
World War
Kingdom during
Sikhs to be clearly identified are represen-
few other castes were
as pedlars.
A
other plaees.*^^ d he British tale can be briefly
was delayed
United
until after
II.
change
in British policy
followed World
W ar
II
because
its
post-
war economic boom created needs which the native British were unable or unwilling to meet, d'he result was the flow of immigration which has transformed much of the United Kingdom. It included many Indians, and a majority of the Indian immigrants were Sikhs. For rather different reasons Canada and the United States also decided to loosen the restrictions so tightly maintained during the preceding four decades.
was now an independent country and the two North American nations were both sensitive to issues involving international relations. Quota systems were eventually introduced and these have since produced new Sikh communities in both countries. In Canada the post-war change of policy was implemented in 1951. Although the policy applied to all South Asians it was to be expected that Sikhs, with their traditions of migration and their old-established links with Canada, would figure prominently amongst the new entrants. Bv the mid-198()s the Sikh population in Canada was evidently 80,000- 100,000, approximately thirty percent of all South Asian Canadians.^^ In Canada, as in the United States, a significant proportion India
of the Sikh immigrants have entered with professional qualifications or
have acquired them after
from
arrival,
fhis distinguishes the
predecessor, a contrast which
new commu-
bv a greater diversity of caste backgrounds and by the preference which many have shown for eastern Canada rather than for British Columbia. Inevitably this has led to tensions in places such as V ancouver where the two waves have overlapped. Although the weight of professional numbers makes the North American situation somewhat different from the United Kingdom all three countries now possess Sikh communities which share some common characteristics. One is the continuing importance of the gurdwara nity
its
as a social center as well as a place for
worship.
further strengthened
Some
Sikhs with profes-
and ambitions find their personal fulfillment elsewhere, but most the gurdwara remains an essential component in the mainte-
sional skills for
is
108
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERN WORLD nance of valued traditions and important
social linkages. In
waras the weekly langar (the meal which ularly valuable
all
many gurd-
take together)
means of sustaining such contacts within
a
a partic-
is
congenial and
familiar atmosphere.
Kven within the gurdwaras, however, there
are distinct signs that
impinging and that changes are imminent. Although the gurdwara patterns of worship still replicate the traditional forms local influences are
practiced in the Punjab there ing of these forms
is
now
is
evidence which indicates that the mean-
being questioned by some of the second-
generation Sikhs living overseas.
many
I
he same questioning also extends to
of the time-honored traditions of the Panth and include an oft-
repeated desire to
know what
the sacred scriptures actually contain.
The new communities also replicate the other standard features of panthic practice, though commonly under conditions which impose serious strains. (Aste observance provides an obvious example.
dia
is
it
in In-
not difficult to find instances of inter-caste marriage, particu-
amongst those from
larly
As
families
with high-status professional or
however, caste continues to be observed in terms of marriage arrangements, and many gurdwaras are covertly or openly caste-based in terms of control and dominant membership.^'^ Phis is not necessarily a condition w hich v\’ill be accepted by educational backgrounds.
the children
who
are now’
In general,
growing towards adulthood, and signs of
se-
rious stress have already appeared with regard to traditional marriage
arrangements.
fhe
factional character of Punjabi society also persists in the
Western
context, intimately associated with traditional concepts of izzat.
erners
who
lack an understanding of these traditions
find Sikh behavior difficult to
tured in the tradition can be expected to cope
generations
may
may sometimes
comprehend, particularly
dispute happens to involve violence. Sikh elders
w ith
who
its
W est-
if
a factional
have been nur-
results,
but younger
well share the incomprehension of the foreigner.
Phis treatment of the Sikh diaspora brings the discussion to the present day, bypassing the Punjab
during the four decades since Partition in 1947. I return to 1947 in order to trace those events and to examine their effect
transformed
now
homeland and the events which have so
it
on the Sikhs. Although the partition of the Punjab had brought incalculable suffering and loss it soon appeared that one notable advantage might have been acquired by the Panth. Prior to Partition the Sikhs comprised a
109
THE SIKHS I\ THE MODERX WORLD mere tw elve percent of the
Punjab population, scattered unev enly
total
over the entire province but numericallv dominant nowhere.
“
Partition
altered that pattern significantlv, producing the large-scale migrations
which moved substantial populations across the new border. Muslims moved westwards into Pakistan, Hindus and Sikhs eastwards into India. Phis demographic disruption had obvious consequences for the Sikhs and in retrospect not all the results were seen to be disastrous. Most of the Sikhs who crossed from Pakistan did not proceed far bevond the border. Although manv of the refugees settled in New Delhi and some moved on to other parts of India most found their new homes in Pastern Punjab. Phis produced a concentration of Sikhs, further increased w hen the former princelv states w ithin the area merged with the Punjab in 1956.“^ Although the Sikhs were still a minority in the Punjab thev obviously constituted a majority within the central and upper portion of the state. It was only the Hindu-majority districts of the southeast w hich made them a minoritv within the state as a whole. Phere
now
existed, so
it
seemed, the possibilitv of achieving
a
po-
The SGP(^ was
still
litical
identitv
w hich would be
intact
and
1949 the central government had conferred on
in
which
distinctivelv Sikh.
it
a
cen-
had never previously’ possessed. Phe Akali Dal had likewise survived Partition and its leaders could now survev a more promising political scene. One man stood out. Phis was Master
tralized influence
Para Singh, himself
a
a distinctive identity.
his supporters
it
refugee and a
The
was what
man
deeplv committed to belief
in
question w hich confronted Para Singh and
political
free expression to that identity
form thev should seek
in
order to give
.'^
Phe objective which they eventually formulated was Punjabi Suba, a redrawine of the state boundaries to include onlv those who claimed C’ Punjabi as their mother tongue. In pursuing this objective Para Singh did not lead a unified Panth. Since independence political allegiances within the Sikh community^ have alwavs been divided between Congress and the Akalis, with small minorities supporting the two principal communist parties. Phere have, moreover, been the ever-present caste factor (one which all parties have been able to exploit) and the influence of factional alignments.^*’ Jat support has been vital for all parties, and although Para Singh yvas not himself a Jat he necessarily depended on the loyal assistance of Jat lieutenants. Phe substantial Plarijan vote has also been significant. Although local pressures could often direct Plarw
ijan votes to a particular
candidate the
I
10
I
larijan voters
tended strongly
THE SIKHS IS THE MODEKS WORLD to support the (Congress Party as the best protector of their interests.^'
w as
by pow erful notably by Jawaharlal Nehru. Fhe claim for Punjabi Suba
also opf'K)sed
ing state was, in his view, a covert
interests outside the Panth, a
redraw n Punjabi-speak-
means of securing
a
Sikh-majoritv
and was thus to be view ed as serving the needs of the Sikh communitv rather than strictlv linguistic. Manv others shared this view, particularly’ those associated w ith the Arva Samaj and the Jan Sangh.^^ It was, however, a view w hich patently conflicted with the provisions of the Indian Constitution and l ara Singh could legitimately claim that state
opposition to Punjabi Suba should a
view which advocated,
aside because applying
itself
be treated as communal.
in effect, that the (Constitution it
might favor
a
was
It
should be
particular community’.
set
The
Constitution provided for the drayving of state boundaries on linguistic lines
and
if
the inhabitants of a particular area
y\
ere predominantly’ Pun-
jabi-speaking that area could claim the right to statehood. It
is,
of course, evident that the
demand had
a
communal purpose.
Those y\ho proposed Punjabi Suba had the (Constitution on their side but they’ also had Sikh demography
They yvere assisted in their task bv a misdirected Arya Samaj campaign to persuade Punjabispeaking Hindus that thev should declare lindi to be their mother tongue. This set some lindu-majority areas beyond the purvieyv of the in
mind.
I
I
proposed neyv the
demand
state,
thus ensuring a Sikh majority. After Nehru’s death
yvas eventually’
conceded, partly as
a result of the conspic-
uous service rendered bv Sikhs during the India-Pakistan W ar of 1965. d'ara Singh had meanyvhile been displaced as leader of the Punjabi Suba
campaign bv his principal lieutenant, Sant Fateh Singh, and it yvas Fateh Singh yvho conducted the final negotiations yvith Lai Bahadur Shastri. Fhe demand yvas finally accepted bv Shastri’s successor, Indira (Candhi, in 1966.^^
Fara Singh had provided an opportunity for his enemies yvhen in 1961 he terminated a fast-unto-death yvithout securing his objective, and
accompanied by deep personal humiliation.^^ There can be little doubt that the lengthy campaign for Punjabi Sul)a reflected in large measure his personal strengths and y\’eaknesses. It could justly be claimed that he yvas highly emotional and frecjuently impulsive. It must also be acknoy\’ledged that he possessed enormous poy\ ers of persistence and that he spoke a language yvhich stronglv ewoked Sikh traditions and sensitivities. Although the sty le has ahvavs been a feature of Akali Dal strategy it yvould be difficult to find an exponent to ee|ual his dismissal y\'as
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERS WORLD Master
1
unless
skills
No
ara Singh.
IMiindranw
it
Sikh leader of reeent times has matched his
be that forthright examplar of
latter
days, Jarnail Singh
ale.
The granting of Punjabi Suba heralded
a brief
period of optimism,
one which has been termed “the creative half-decade.”^^
An outward
expression of this spirit was the series of anniv ersary celebrations which
began
in
Singh. of
I
1966-67 with the tercentenary of the birth of Ciuru Gobind his was followed in 1968-69 bv the tjuincentenarv of the birth
(dim Nanak and
event
in
by the annual choice of some appropriate he first two celebrations produced a parthe Panth’s history. vibrant response, one which clearly testified to a spirit of hope thereafter
I
ticularly
and confidence.
It
is
w as
true that the exercise
elitist in
terms of plan-
ning, conspicuous participation, and the choice of appropriate rials.
I
memo-
he bursts of activity produced by the various jubilees were
means of generating self-awareness amongst Sikhs and some important projects were initiated or extended. Literature and education are prominent examples of the spirit which w as abroad within the Panth during this brief period. In order to appreciate its influence one need only compare the number of books dealing with Sikh history and tradition which were available before and nevertheless highly significant as a
after the period began.
Punjabi University
in
Patiala,
having partici-
pated prominently in stimulating the wave of enthusiasm, benefited considerably from
its
result.
(Juru
Nanak University (now Guru Nanak
Dev University) w as established in Amritsar by the Punjab government to mark the quincentenary occasion and it has since shown considerable imagination in the range of academic enterprises w hich it has initiated. .\n institution
pose
is
founded during
this period
with
a specifically
Ciiirmat College in Patiala. Affiliated to the (iuru
Department of Religious Studies
in
Sikh pur-
(mbind Singh
Punjabi University this college pre-
pares students for a master’s degree in Sikh history, religion and phi-
losophy. Another institution established
Nanak Foundation
in
New
at
same time is the (duru in research and Sikh mu-
the
Delhi, specializing
si col otjy.
A
w
cynical view
ill
stress the privileged nature of these enterprises
and will draw’ attention to the wav in which they express the usual dynamics of Sikh society. Punjabi University, it is sometimes claimed, represents the Khatri-Arora interest
new foundation
in
tional alignments
w
ithin the Panth, ensuring that the
Amritsar would have to be
immediately appear w ithin
I
12
a jat university.
all
Fac-
such institutions and
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERX WORLD all
which has
are inevitably subject to a political influence
little
interest
which they represent. Scholarship attracts little more than lip-service. Patronage, contacts and skilled maneuver are the effective means of advancement in academic institutions as anvw here in the original ideals
else. I
hese are accusations
there
mav be
in
w
commonlv
hich one
them there can be no denving the
ments which such
W hatever
hears.
truth
substantial achieve-
produced and which thev proved to be resilient, weathering
institutions have alreadv
continue to deliver. 1 hev have also
Mrs. (iandhi’s Emergency (1975-77) and the more recent troubles that have so conspicuouslv assailed the Panth. such storms
as the period of
Hints of the troubles were alreadv becoming evident bv the beginning of the
197()s. In political
terms Punjabi Suba had failed to deliver
w hich would give effective expression to Sikh aspirations. In part this was because the small Sikh majoritv could never be mobilized for long enough to initiate anv such plan; and in part it w as because there was no clear consensus regarding the form which anv plan should take. Punjabi Suba had provided a the anticipated result, namelv a government
one which could be defined with precision and defended with simple arguments. But w hat lav bevond it? W hat are the special interests of the Sikhs and how should they be given statutarv expression? Are these Sikhs a “nation” as many have claimed and if so what
clear purpose,
does the English word “nation” mean
in this context?
w hat
It
mav
be agreed
meaning should one attach to these words? During the 198()s these issues were to come into sharper focus. Ehroughout the preceding decade, however, there was to be much uncertainty concerning fundamental definitions and it would be idle to claim that even todav the uncertaintv has been elimthat the
Punjab
is
the Sikh homeland, but
inated within the Panth. Plainly
it
practical
persists.
Uncertainties have also been prompted bv the nature of the Akali
Dal and bv the contending elements within
its
declared policies. Since
Independence the Akali Dal has been largely dominated bv Jat landowners and inevitablv it reflects their special concerns in the policies which it enunciates. I he distinctive purposes of Sikh homelanders and Sikh land-owners are not always easy to separate and because both constituencies are present within the Akali Dal, grappling with the true nature and dominant concerns of the party can be a challenging task.
The
fact that 'Akali leaders
tion to great effect
have often deployed Sikh idiom and tradi-
merelv complicates the general
113
issue.
Are we con-
THE SIKHS ccrncd
\\ itli
THE MODERS WORLD
I\
Sikh aspirations or w
inant elite? Obviously
v\'e
shall
the economic interests of a
ith
encounter both, but what
is
dom-
the nature
of the mix and how does one range of objectives relate to the other?
complex problem, rendered even more complex by the success of the (been Revolution in the Runjab, From one perspective the Green Revolution can be viewed as a triumph of Sikh versatility, appropriating modern techniques in order to advance a traditional occupation. From another perspective it will be seen as an alarming growth in the power of land-ov\ ners, many of w hom happen to be influential members of the Akali Dal or of the factions which it produces. It also has a relevant side-effect in that one consequence has been the need for increasing supplies of labor from outside the Punjab. Many of the workers drawn from such regions as Bihar have remained in the Punjab, generating fears that their presence may alter the communal balance and increase is
It
a
local tensions. I
he essential ambiguity of the Akali position
series of policy statements
past fifteen years,
d he
w
first
olution of October 17, 1973.
is
w ell expressed
in a
hich the Akali Dal has issued during the
of these was the celebrated
Anandpur Res-
^^
This controversial statement begins with the claim: “ I he Shiromani Akali Dal is the supreme body of the Sikh Panth and as such is fully authorised to represent and lead them.” It states a series of aims w hich include both the propagation of Sikh reand the introduction of
ligion plies
two
lists
a just
economic system, and
The
of specific objectives.
first is
it
then sup-
confined to religious
Fhe second (headed “Political”) demands that certain territories should be added to the Punjab and in item II. fib) briefly claims a significantly enlarged state autonomy. Economic concerns, generally absent from the Anandpur Resolution, became much more conspicuous in later statements such as the Charter of Akali Grievances issued on September 8, 1981.^^ Fhis statement adds economic and social categories to the religious and political lists of its predecessor, and the former includes items which plainly reflect the concerns.
concerns of rural land-owners. C>onspicuous (twenty-one as op['K)sed to the fourteen claims
among
these grievances
listed as “Religious”)
such items as inadequate prices for agricultural produce and
were
a ceiling
of seven hectares of rural land without any corresponding limitation on
urban property. Fhe 1981 charter
is
a
much more
document than the Anandpur Resolution, by the
political
strident
and anxious
change of tone produced developments of the preceding decade. Fhe 197()s were
I
14
a
THE SIKHS IN THE MODERS WORLD years of repeated frustration for the Akalis and these frustrations were increasingly
affecting
the
Panth
as
a
whole.
'Fhev were certainly
achievements to be recorded, notably the unique willingness of the Akali
Dal to stand up to Mrs Gandhi during the period of her Emergency.
A
reward followed the ending of the Emergency, but the Akali welcome w ithin the janta government w as at best lukew arm. W hen it brief
fell
they found themselves in the familiar position of disadvantaged con-
frontation with a (Congress central government.
This brings us to the end of the decade and to political developments
which were
to prove dramatically significant for the Akali Dal
and
for
the Panth as a whole. Although the events themselves and their actual
purpose remain topics of vehement controversy
and some key events seem
now
a clear outline
to be generally
has emerged
acknowledged.
One
sue derives from an insistent Sikh claim that the Punjab be given
a
is-
new’
Congress strategy. 1 ogether with Kashmir and Assam (both of them, like the Punjab, peripheral areas with potentially disaffected minorities) it was to serve as an example of the kind of unstable disruptive role in
society which,
unity of India.
if it .\11
were
who
to
remain unchecked, would threaten the very
treasure that unity
must accordingly
rally to
Mrs Ciandhi and her Oingress government, thus ensuring electoral support sufficient to guarantee at least one more term in office. In order to make this policy credible it was necessary (so this interpretation runs) to stir up trouble in the Punjab and to ensure that the trouble continued for as long as necessary.
Support
for peace
and
sta-
must be publicly affirmed, but no agreement was to be reached with the Akalis. W henever agreement seemed imminent negotiations were broken off or sabotaged in some way or other, thus increasing Akali frustrations and prompting them to actions which could only confirm the Congress analysis of the threat which they posed. bility
Phis interpretation proceeds a further step with
its
explanation for
the induction into Punjab politics of the extremist leader Jarnail Singh
Bhindranwale. Jarnail Singh was a Sant, one of the religious teachSanjay ers who impart Sikh doctrine and tradition to rural Sikhs.
Gandhi, having noted the increasing influence of Sants in Sikh politics, suggested that a chosen example of the breed should be introduced into the political arena in such a way that he would serve to divide Sikh forces and further frustrate the Akali leaders, d his he could be depended on to do by lodging claims that w ould attract extremist support while embarrassing the more moderate leaders who at the time were
115
THE SIKHS I\ THE MODERX WORLD participating in an unstable state government, (iiani Zail Singh, at the
time
I
lome Minister
in the central
government,
is
also said to
have been
involved in the plan although he himselt has vigorously denied any such connection.'^' I
he actual occasion for Bhindranwale’s induction w as an assembly
Fhe
of Nirankaris held in Amritsar on April 13, 1978.
w as
Nirankari sect
heretical Sant
alreadv the target of orthodox Sikh disapproval and
such an assemblv, reluctantlv sanctioned by an Akali state government,
was represented bv Hhindranwale as altogether intolerable. 1 he march w Inch he led on the convention ended in a serious clash, leaving three Nirankaris and twelve Sikhs dead. Sant Jarnail Singh Bhindranwale had arrived on the political scene, and having
done so he soon demonstrated
was his own man."^' Bhindranwale has predictable been the object of respect and adulation, denigration and fear. A considerable hagiography has gathered around him, matched bv a corresponding demonologv. Although he was killed during the Indian armv assault on the Golden I'emple complex in June 1984 his reputation lives on, both for those w ho revered him and also for those who feared or despised him. An unbiased that he
impression
needless to say, very difficult to acquire at such close
is,
quarters and
we
shall
have to wait until the dust
settles before accurate
assessments can be made, fhis much, however, can be affirmed. Jarnail
Singh Bhindranwale has car\ ed for himself tradition
and no amount of academic or
dislodge
him from
For
manv
a martvr’s niche in the Panth’s
journalistic reassessment
w
ill
that place in the popular affections.
Sikhs Jarnail Singh Bhindranw ale marked a return to the
older traditions of pietv and heroism, a visible representative of the ideal sant-sipahJ.
In
its
generic sense sant has
come
to
mean one who
upholds the religious principles of Ciurmat, exemplifving life
those elementarv truths which the
firmlv
in his personal
Gurus progressivelv taught
their
from the cvcle of as the eternal power
disciples to observe in order to achieve liberation
transmigration.
These
principles include such beliefs
Name
and the absolute sanctitv of the divine scripture. 1 hev also affirm the compelling power of nam simaran and a w illing acceptance of the undiminished Rahit. Beliefs and behavior of this order characterize the sant and as has just
of the divine
been noted the word has been appropriated for teachers of popular Sikh tradition who (in theorv at least) manifest such qualities. To these qual-
/ 1
6
THE SIKHS IS THE MODEKS W ORLD added the loyalty, obedienee and unswerving heroism of the sipahJ or soldier. Although there is no sanction in Sikh doctrine for capricious or unnecessary w ielding of the sword there is the clearest possible authority tor its use when the Fanth is assailed and w hen all other means ot protection have failed. I he authority derives from a famous couplet attributed to Guru Cjobind Singh, sealed and dramatically exemplified by his ow n career as a military leader. Upon this foundation ities
are
are built the powerfully militant traditions of the eighteenth century,
replete
w
ith stories
of prodigious bravery, noble suffering, and willing
martyrdom. Jarnail Singh Bhindranwale has had a bad press in the West, one which effectively conceals the attraction which he exercises for many Sikhs as a genuine exemplar of the sant-sipahi ideal. Some dismiss it as “fundamentalism,” a word which we use when we wish to imply that reason has fled leaving a simplistic interpretation of whatever passes for basic tradition. In a sense the term is just, for Bhindranwale did indeed give expression to a strict and essentially intolerant view of the Sikh tradition.
It is
also legitimate to trace a part of his influence to radical
w hich communicated the
uncertainties within the Fanth, uncertainties belief that a closing of
“Fundamentalism” is
used persistently
orthodox ranks was
is,
may
however,
a
vital.
word which may mislead, and
if it
cause to be misconstrued both the problem and
the response. Like the condition which
it
purports to describe
too easily suggest simplistic explanations, prompting evasion of a
it
can
com-
plex task by offering crude doctrine as a substitute. For an explanation
of the problem
we must
take account of
much more
tions or the militant traditions of the Khalsa.
but so too are the
political
complex range of
social
than Sikh aspira-
may
Fhese
be relevant,
circumstances of India’s recent past and the
and economic
interests
which produced those
circumstances. Its
strongly pejorative connotations can also encourage misunder-
standing.
I
he response has indeed involved
traditions of the Fanth, but labeling
it
may
strong emphasis on the
“fundamentalist” wall probably
ensure that our approach to the problem outset. Bhindranwale’s actions
a
is
unsympathetic from the
be regarded as
the tradition, out of touch with present realities and disaster.
a
gross version of
doomed
His response should nevertheless be underst(X)d as
endeavored
to'
apply traditional ideals
/ I
7
in
a
end in rellex which to
contemporary conditions.
It
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERS WORLD should also be appreciated that those traditional ideals
power
siderable
well
beyond the
still
retain a con-
circle of i^hindranwale’s
immediate
followers.
not to suggest that
I'his is
style,
nor that they w
ill
all
Sikhs will approve of Bhindranwale’s
may be justified when
agree with his objectives. \ iolenee
Punjab and armed resistance may be the faith is under attack, but many will acknowledge that the situation had indeed got out of hand prior to the army attack of June 1984. Although few would defend the decision to mount an assault on the Ciolden femple complex it is generally accepted within the Panth that a res-
endemic
in rural
toration of law
and order was
essential.
who acknowledge
Sikhs
this
need, how ever, will usually maintain that primary responsibility for the crisis
should be attached to the Oingress Party, and they will add that
a restoration
of law and order must involve Congress politicians and the
police as well as
armed Sikhs on motor-cycles. \
source must certainly be eliminated or
at least
iolenee from whatever
contained.
must also be asserted, contrary to the opinion so commonly delivered by the W estern news media, that amongst those who can be regarded as Sikh leaders a substantial majority still oppose the concept of a separate and independent Khalistan.'^ Phis is particularly the case of It
the Sikhs
who
live in India,
partly because they recognize
how
vul-
nerable the Sikhs in states other than the Punjab would be and partly
because they see the proposal as unviable. Having acknowledged these differences
we must
nevertheless note that the events associated with
the current crisis (particularly the storming of the plex and the events following the assassination
created deep resentments
w
ithin the Panth.
Golden Temple comof Mrs Gandhi) have
There
is
a
strong feeling
Panth has been cynically exploited for purposes which do not concern the Sikhs, and that the Panth has been grievously maligned by that the
those responsible for that exploitation or willing to be persuaded by
its
apologists.
which have been made since 1984 to settle the Punjab have all failed and it has become increasingly clear that real peace is probably many years and possibly several generations away. The wounds indicted by recent years will not heal quickly, nor w ill suspicions, fears, and resentments suddenly dissipate. It is to be expected that these feelings w ill not only be eneountered for quite some time to come, but w ill also continue to affect the attitudes and behavior of those w ho retain Fiforts
118
THE SIKHS IS THE MODERS WORLD them.
It
has been a truly serious crisis and no one should imagine that
there will be a speedy return to the situation
One
which preceded
it.
w hich subsists between Punjabi Sikhs and Punjabi Hindus. Again care must be taken not to exaggerate the damage which has occurred. One will still encounter many indiyidual friendships which are as firm as they eyer w ere, in some cases made stronger by the fire through w hich they haye passed. Suspicions haye neyertheless been aroused and old enmities
particularh' unfortunate casualty has been the relationship
reawakened.
It is
certainly to be expected that the allaying of these
feelings will take a long time
w
ill
and that the restoration of genuine trust
take eyen longer.
These are negatiye results.
On
the positiye side
many
Sikhs have
rediscovered a tradition which for them was quietly fading and an identity
which they had
effectively renounced.
There
awareness of the strength which the old tradition
is
still
now
a
much
retains
and
livelier
much
a
greater readiness to accept the exterior marks of the Panth’s historic identity.
Again care must be taken neither
to oversimplify
nor to ex-
would be false to suggest that the Rahit has suddenly resumed a dominance which it had lost or that the heightened consciousness of recent years will necessarily survive a return to more peaceful circumstances. The tradition has nevertheless been revitalized and its influence on future developments within the Panth must surely have aggerate.
It
been strengthened. For Sikhs the compensating factor nas thus been awakened consciousness, a revived concern for their inherited tradition and identity.
For others
it
is
a
new awareness
may many the
of the Sikhs. 1 he actual events
not have been accurately represented in
all
instances and for
may quickly fade, but by no means all will be lost. Something the new awareness will remain and it will be particularly welcome countries where migrant Sikhs now form significant communities.
interest
of in
Sikhs and the Sikh tradition have never before rated as topics of wide-
spread interest outside India.
It
is
a
high price to pay, but
events can weaken indifference and diminish neglect
have come from the tragedy.
I
19
if
recent
some good
will
V t" -
'
NOTE ON SOURCES
T
X HERK are standard
printed editions of both the Adi Granth and the
Dasam
(iranth. All editions of the
and
correspond exactly
all
pages. Similarly, the
name
in all printed editions.
Adi (iranth references give
word vdr. I'he number number of the hymn, followed by
of a raga, sometimes preceded by the
the Adi Granth page on which first
of 1,430 pages,
has a total of 1,428 pages, with each
v\’hich follows the raga designates the
the
a total
terms of the material printed on individual
Dasam Granth
page exactly the same the
in
Adi Granth have
it
occurs. \\ here the reference
figure designates the stanza
and the figure
is
to a vdr
after the colon gives
number of the shalok or “couplet” which precedes that stanza. Guru Nanak’s Vdr Mdjh 7:1 accordingly designates the first of the shaloks at-
the
tached to the seventh stanza of the vdr
in
Mdjh
raga.
In the case of the Vdrdn Bhdi Gurdds the first of the
two
figures indicates
the vdr and the second gives the stanza in that vdr. For example, Vdrdn Bhdi
Gurdds 26:24 refers to the tw entv-fourth stanza of the tw enty-sixth vdr. \\ hen a
reference to
TSSS follows
it
indicates that a translation
is
to
be found
in
Textual Sources for the Study of Sikhism. Earlier
works by the present author are frequently
necessary repetitions they will be cited by author and
and thereafter by abbreviated
title
cited.
To
title at first
only as follows:
B4() J-s
The B4() Jafiam-sdkhi
CSR-n
The Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndmd
ESC EST GSSR
The Evolution of
Early Sikh Tradition
PSZ
Ptoijahis in IVevc 'Zealand
TSSS
Textual Sources for the Study of Sikhism
Guru Ndnak and
Full publication information can be
the Sikh
121
Community
the Sikh Religion
found
in the
avoid un-
Bibliography.
mention
i
1
i
»
i
t
i
r t
NOTES
2.
Origins of the Sikh Tradition
I'he
W ilfred
1.
Cantw ell Smith, The Meaning and End
of Religion
(New York:
Macmillan, 1962), pp. 66-67. 2.
Marbans Singh,
3.
.\1.
mukh
“Guru Nanak’s
.Mujeeb,
Religion, Islam and Sikhism,” in
Nihal Singh, ed.. Guru Sanak: His
Harbans Singh,
more
Berkeley Lectures on Sikhism, pp, 7-8,
detail
on
p. 8; Professor
\\
5.
The
.
the Sikh Religion.
janam-sakhis are hagiographic narratives of the cast as a series of anecdotes.
hundred years
See chapter
old.
H. McLeod, Early
6.
\\
7.
GSSR,
8.
Ibid., pp.
9.
\\.
.
this view’ in a little
11.
p.
Nanak, usually at least a
Times, and Teachings, p. 116.
Harbans Singh defends
H. McLeod, Guru Sanak and
4.
Life,
Gur-
The
life
of
Guru
existing janam-sakhis are
6.
Sikh Tradition:
Study of the Janam-sakhis, ch.
14.
146.
p.
110-12, 114-17, 125-32.
H. .McLeod, “Inter-Linear
(1973), no.
3,
pp. 105-6.
10.
\n example
11.
.M.
(strictlv
Inscriptions in Sri V.AwVdi," South Asia
is
J.
S. Cirewal, particularly in
A. .Macauliffe, The Sikh
speaking
a
Religion, vol.
Guru Nanak
1. '\ \\t
Purdtan janam-sakhi
small group of related janam-sakhis)
ditional accounts of the life of
in History.
is
one of the
tra-
Nanak, evidently recorded around the middle
of the seventeenth centurv. 12.
51;
d'he Purdtan janam-sakhi
.McLeod,
'The
W’. 11.
•!
.McLeod,
latter
work
GSSR,
pp. 36-
and ES'T,
esp. pp.
extensively discussed in
Evolution of the Sikh Community, ch.
22-30, 181-97, In the the Narrative
is
it is
2;
labeled the Narrative 1 tradition. For
tradition anecdotes included in the B-IO Janam-sdkhJ, tr..
The B4() janam-sdkht, p. 11-14.
123
see
ORiaiXS OF THE SIKH TRAD IT IDS
2.
Singh,
\'ir
13.
Samachar, 1959), \
14.
ed.,
Puratan Janani-sdkhi,
of the janam-sakhi
set
is
w
16.
p. 25;
G\SR,
ithin its larger conte.xt in
ESI\ pp. 248-67. The B4() janam-sakhi has
15.
Khalsa
(Amritsar:
ed.
16. B4() J-s, p. 21.
p.
Singh, cd., Puratan Janam-sdkhJ,
ir
5th
a
1
p. 39.
EST,
poor Sikh cut his hair
254-56.
p.
in
his feature
order to
sell
it
to provide hospitality to the (iuru. B4() J-s, p. 50.
For
17.
and
W'.
1
a
1.
much
fuller
survey of the Sant tradition, see Karine Schomer
.McLeod, eds.. The Sants: Studies
esp. (Charlotte \ audeville,
Sanctity,” pp. 21
W
.
Mat: Santism
as the Universal
See also GSSR, pp. 151-58.
K).
.M.
1938);
.McClelland, cutta:
1958);
Yoga:
Fliade,
may
be consulted:
Immortality and Freedom
Shashibhusan Dasgupta, Obscure
Firma K. L. .Mukopadhyav, 1962); and the
X’audeville, esp. Kabir, vol.
1
(London:
Religious Cults (Cal-
v\Titings of (Charlotte
(Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1974).
d’he view that Nanak’s teachings utilize concepts
19.
Path to
Briggs, Gorakbnath and the Kanpbata Yogis (Calcutta: O.xford Univer-
Press,
sity
a Devotional Tradition of India,
For the Nath tradition the following works
18. Ci.
—
'"Sant
in
drawn from Nath
sources has been attacked by Daljeet Singh, The Sikh Ideology, pp. 43-66.
The
attack
is
misguided, for the author assumes that Nath concepts are
said to have directly influenced
Guru Nanak’s works
Nanak
in a
conscious sense.
The
fact that
Nath doctrines does not mean that the follow ers of the Sant tradition were uninduenced by them. The word sahaj provides an example; although the Sants clearly reject the Nath concept of sahaj, those v\’ho employ the term affirm its prime importance in its explicitly reject
reconstituted form.
ESC, pp. 60-61.
20.
See chapter
21.
GNSR,
22.
C. Shackle, “.Approaches to the Persian Loans in the Adi Granth,"'
6.
pp. 158-61.
Bulletin of the School of Oriental
also J. S.
and African Studies (1978), 41(l):81-96. See
Grewal, From Guru Xanak
to
Maharaja Ranjit Singh, 2d ed., pp.
6-17. 23. \\
.
11.
(lUru Nanak, Vdr Mdjh 7.1. .\di (iranth, pp. 140-41.
.McLeod, Textual Sources
24.
Shackle, p. 93.
25.
.Attention
is
drawn
ranslated in
for the Study of Sikhism, p. 43.
to the fact that the
word
is
italicized.
word “man.” This and other key terms are discussed chapter 4 and in GXSR, pp. 163-226 pass.
the Fnglish length in
I
124
It
is
not
at greater
3.
FOUR CENTURIES OE S/KH HISTORY Linda Hess, “Three Kabir Collections:
26.
A
Comparative Study,”
in
Schomer and McLeod, eds.. The Sants, pp. 122-23, 137. 27. In the Adi Granth all the Gurus sign their works “Nanak” and each is identified by the word mahala with an appropriate number. Compositions labeled “.Mahala 1” (or simply “.Ml”) are by Guru Nanak; those labeled “.Mahala 2” or “.M2” are bv Guru .\ngad, and so on. EST, p. 287.
3.
Four Onturies of Sikh History
survey of Sikh history, see J. S. Cirewal, The Sikhs of the Punjab. Harbans Singh’s The Heritage of the Sikhs is written bv a devout Sikh but is 1
For
.
a
aw are of the problems which
.
Owen
Practices;
(>)le
it
too,
.\mong the
raises,
Guru
covers the history of the \\
it
which are involved
Sikhs: Their Religious Beliefs
approach,
in its
is
sensitive to the
3.
is
and
problems
study of Sikh history and religion.
in the
TSSS, pp. 9-13. Surjit Singh Hans, “Historical .\nalvsis of Sikh Literature
2.
one which
period and the religion of the Sikhs
and Piara Singh Sambhi, The though cautious
briefer surveys
Nanak Dev
to 1850)” (Ph.D. dissertation, (iuru
(.\.l).
1500
University, .Amritsar, 1980),
pp. 439-40.
Khushwant Singh, A “(iurmat” means “the
4. 5.
as
“Sikhism.” See chapter
History of the Sikhs, 1:76.
Ciurus’ teachings.”
It is
inaccurately translated
4.
d'he theory has been argued in considerable detail bv Richard
6.
Ci.
P"ox, Lions of the Punjab. 7.
J.
A
D. Cunningham,
History of the Sikhs (Delhi: S.
Chand,
1955),
p. 34. 8. 1
The
standard
te.xt is
one from 'Aafar-ndma,
st.
22,
Dasam Granth,
p.
390:
chu kar az hamah halal asatu
(When It is
9. liffe.
Khushwant Singh,
all
hilate dar guzasat;
buradan ba samaser dasat. other means have failed.
lawful to grasp the sword.)
1:88-89. For Singh Sabha examples, see .Macau-
The Sikh Religion, 5:91-97. Teja Singh and Cianda Singh,
tory of the Sikhs,
w hich gave
1:68-70.
the issue
formation of Sikhism
its
w as
From
the
same period came the
characteristic first
A
Short His-
influential
book
name: Gokul Chand Narang’s Trans-
published in Lahore
12 5
in
1912.
FOUR CENTURIES OE SIKH HISTORY
3.
Singh, Perspectives on Sikh Studies,
10. Jagjit
his thesis in this 1
1
.
12.
ESC,
book and
chs.
1
Ibid., pp.
and
in his earlier
p. vii.
work The
The
author developed
Sikh Revolution.
3.
13-19, 45-52.
For particularly vigorous attacks on The Evolution of the Sikh Community, see Jagjit Singh, Daljeet Singh, and jasbir Singh Ahluwalia in The 13.
Journal of Sikh Studies (February 1977), 4:36-54, 166-77; and Fauja Singh The Punjab Past and Present 11.1 (April 1977) and The Journal of Religious
in
(Spring 1978), vol. the
two
See also jagjit Singh, Perspectives on Sikh
6.
sections of the latter
title
Studies:
are devoted to the caste issue and Jat
influence respectively. 14.
ESC, pp. 45-50.
The ten Ciurus were: Ciuru Nanak (1469-1539), Guru Angad (150452), Guru Amar Das (1479-1574), Guru Ram Das (1534-81), Guru Arjan (1563-1606), Guru Hargobind (1595-1644), Guru Hari Rai (1630-61), Guru Hari Krishan (1656-64), Guru Tegh Bahadur (1621-75), and Guru Gobind Singh (1666-1708). Each Guru succeeded to the title at the death of his 15.
predecessor. 16.
The
notable e.xample of the egalitarian principle was the institution
of the langar, the refectories attached to dharam-salas in which
were expected 17.
to sit
and eat without regard
This evidence includes
Guru
to caste status.
bv Bhai Gurdas, the distinguished riting of the original Adi Granth during
v\
Arjan. In his celebrated vdrs, Bhai Gurdas clearly indi-
cated unease at the change of policy initiated by the
Gurdas 26:24. For a translation, see TSSS, 18.
The
Jats
were
p.
31,
si.xth
Guru. Varan Bhai
and chapter
tilled
the
soil.
This, however, does not correspond
to current status, for today they are without question the
ing
Punjab.
They were
N. Gerald
dominant
modern Uttar Pradesh. of Punjab and Sind,” in Harbans Singh and into
Barrier, eds., Punjab Past and Present: Essays in
Ganda Singh, pp. 72-103. In disturbances Jats were prone to they were also distinguished bv their long hair. 19.
This interpretation
caste
comparatively recent entry to the Punjab, mov-
a
up from the south and spreading eastwards
See Irfan Flabib, “Jatts
6, n.33.
people, ranking low in the conventional caste
a rural
hierarchy because they
in the
devotees
a verse
Sikh responsible for the actual the time of
all
is
Honour of Dr. violent means;
preeminently offered by Ratan Singh Bhangu
1-36, translated in TSSS, pp. 7173. PrdchJn Panth Prakaf which strongly stressed the divine mission of the
in his Prdchin
Khalsa,
w
as
Panth Prakds,
completed
sec.
16, st.
in 1841.
126
4.
SIKH DOCTRINE
20.
See for example the Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndmd^
21.
TSSS, pp. 34-37. ESC, pp. 14-15.
22.
I
his
is
sec.
166.
Cur Sobhd.
the interpretation of Sainapati in
S.
J.
Erom Guru Nanak to Maharaja Ranjit Singh, p. 79. See chapter 23. \\ H. McLeod, tr., The Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndmd.
Grewal,
5, n.6.
.
Grewal, pp. 59-60, notes that early sources refer to “five weapons,” not to “five Ks.” Five is a popular number in Sikh tradition 24.
Ibid., p.
150.
and the panj mel (the Spurned Five)
as the panj pidre (the (Cherished Five)
indicate. 25.
1
he best work dealing with the Singh Sabha movement
available, but
W orld
is
it
hoped
that
it
will be.
Reconstructed: Religion, Ritual, and
It
is
not vet
Harjot Singh Oberoi,
is
(ommunitv .Among
“A
Sikhs, 1850-
1909” (Ph.l). dissertation, .Australian National University, Canberra, 1987).
Oberoi disputes the notion that the Ranth was “decaying” during riod.
For
a useful
summary
N. G.
of the period, see
this pe-
Barrier, The Sikhs and
Their Literature, pp. xvii-xlv. 26.
Rajiv
.A.
Kapur, Sikh Separatism: The
Politics
of Eaith,
chs.
2-6.
Mohinder Singh, The Akali Movement.
4. 1.
One work w hich
Sikh Doctrine
does offer
a brief
Singh Mansukhani, Aspects of Sikhism, chs. ever, on Fnglish terminology. 2. 3.
to
840 J-s, pp. 45-46. GNSR, p. 196. am I
be found
theology of 2
and
3.
It
well aware that the elements
in the earlier of
my own
studies.
I
draw
Gurmat
Gobind concentrates, how-
1
am
is
criticizing are
attention to the years
that have elapsed since then. 4.
M.
5.
Bachitar Ndtak,
6.
The
.A.
Macauliffe, The Sikh Religion, 3:99. st.
2,
Dasam
(iranth p. 39.
Sants are religious teachers
who communicate
teachings con-
cerning Sikh doctrine and tradition in village gurdwaras and in derds abode). \
oung bovs
in a Sant’s
company
are sometimes sent to for
months or even
them
years.
for instruction
of
Sant’s
and remain
Fhe Sants are particularly
commonly succeed inculcating a firm attachment to them. VV. H. McLeod, “I'he Meaning sant in Punjabi Usage,” in Karine Schomer and W. M. .McLeod, eds..
strong on the traditions of the eighteenth century and in
(a
The Sants, pp. 251-63.
127
4.
SIKH DOCTRISE Dasam
Zafar-iiama,
8.
I'he term can be traced to either
22;
st.
1390. See above chapter
Ciranth, p.
7.
3,
n.8.
\.o
gur
Sikh Rahit
dhak Kamiti, 2.
For
Maryada 16th
a particularly
Khalsa. See chapter
4.
a
Is
Sikh?
ed. (Amritsar:
Shiromani (iurduara Parban-
dramatic narrative of the event, see (iiani Gian
should be noted that this
3.
W ho
1983), p. 8.
Singh’s account written late It
(Juru’s door) or
(bv means of the (luru).
diiara
S. 1.
[da] dtiar (the
last is
century and translated
a traditional
in
TSSS,
p.
34-37.
version of the founding of the
3.
Grewal, From Guru Nauak
Maharaja Ranjit Singh, pp. 86-87. Ganda Singh, ed., Ilukamaname (Patiala: Punjabi University, 1967).
J. S.
Shamsher Singh
.\shok, ed., Sisan
to
hukamandme
te
(.Amritsar: Sikh Itihas
Risarach Borad, 1967). 5.
Randhir Singh,
Buk Kampani,
ed.,
Prem Smndrag Granth, 2d
ed. (Jalandhar:
Niu
1953), pp. 73-81.
TSSS, pp. 11-12. Grewal, From Guru Sanak, ch. Gtir Sobhd is discussed in Ganda Singh, ed., Srt Giir Sobha 6.
10.
The
(Patiala:
date of
Punjabi
University, 1967), pp. 21-23. For a brief description and discussion of the gur-bilas literature see chapter 6. 7.
TSSS,
8.
For
p. 74.
a fuller description of these
problems which they pose, see jabi rahit-namds," in S. in
Honour
a useful
of A. L.
.
a
discussion of the
U. .McLeod, “The Problem of the Pan-
N. .Mukherjee,
ed., India: History
P asha m (CAcuna: Subarnarekha,
and Thought: Essays
1982), pp. 103-26. For
description of the important rahit-namas see .\vtar Singh, Ethics of
the Sikhs, pp. 9.
\\
rahit-namas and
TSSS,
128 p.
—
15.
78.
For
a selection
of translations from Prasan-uttar, the
Tanakhah-nama, and the rahit-nama of Prahilad Singh/Rai, see TSSS, pp. 75-79. 10. 1
1
.
“The Problem Ibid., p.
of the Panjabi rahit-namas,''' p. 114.
112.
12.
CSR-n.
13.
Ibid., pp.
149-66, 174-90.
14.
Ibid., pp.
167-74, 190-201.
128
WHO
5.
15.
Randhir Singh,
Buk Kampani, 16.
ed.,
IS
Prem Sumdrag Grauth, 2d
(jurbachan Singh Naiar, ed., Gur ratan mdl arathdt
Or
Sakhee Book:
(Benares: 1873)
See also
Punjab,” ute
Niu
ed. (Jalandhar;
1953).
Punjabi University, 1985), provides
lation.
A SIKHF
a critical text, .\ttar
rendering of the version current at the time of transH. McLeod, “1 he Kukas: Millenarian Sect of the
a
W
.
W ood
in Ci.
Singh of Bhadur,
Gobind Singh's Religion and Doctrines
the Description of Gooroo is
(Patiala:
sail
and
P. S. ()’(>onnor, eds.,
W.
P. Morrell:
A
Trib-
(Ounedin: University of Otago Press, 1973), p. 97. 17. GSR-n, pp. 202-4. The [:K)rtion attributed to Nand Lai begins abruptly
and may perhaps be part of 18.
“The Problem
19.
GSR-n,
a
longer work.
of the Panjabi rahit-namds," pp. 112, 117. (iursikh
10, 543, 506, 24.
secs.
is
Sikh of the Ciuru, a
a
loyal Sikh.
World Reconstructed: Religion, Ritual, and (k)mmunitv .\mong the Sikhs, 1850-1909” (Ph.I). dissertation, .Australian 20.
Ilarjot
Singh Oberoi,
National University, Canberra, 1987), pp. 176-84. far
he Singh Sabha was
I
from united on the question of Rahit reform or on the Khalsa identity
in general.
I
he Lahore Singh Sabha, led by (iiani
(lurmukh Singh, was much more
active in
I)it
Singh and Professor
promoting reform than the more
conservative .Amritsar Singh Sabha. 21.
I
he .Anand
rite
was developed within the Nirankari
sect earlier in
the nineteenth century. John C. B. Webster, The Nirankari Sikhs (Delhi:
Macmillan, 1979),
Although the Nirankaris and Singh Sabha
16.
p.
formers both maintained that
it
replicated a pristine order, no sufficient
evidence can be offered to establish this claim. 4 he
presumably derives from the celebrated is
recited
on
this occasion
RdmakalJ Anand,
sts.
and others
hymn
name Anand
Ram
Das’s
in the Panth’s ritual
(Guru Amar Das’s
1-5 and 40, .Adi (iranth pp. 917-22).
Siiht
It
is
occupied bv
2,
Khalsa see Prem Sumdrag Granth, ch. 22.
does not form
Adi Granth, pp. 773-74. For a detailed fire-ceremony observed bv some members of the
Chhant
description of an earlier
(or “Jov”)
of that name, part of which
the centerpiece of the ceremony, however, as that place
(iuru
4.
Harjot Singh Oberoi, “From Ritual to (Counter-Ritual: Rethinking
the Hindu-Sikh (Question, 1884-1915,” in Joseph F. O’CConnell et Sikh History and Religion in the Tuoentieth Gentury p.
Oberoi attaches produced 23.
re-
a list
in 11^84
1
In an
36ff.
of tw entv-four rahit-namas or similar
and the
last
(.Amritsar,
129
1901).
I
eds.,
appendix
w orks, the
(Guramat Prakds Bhdg Sanskdr)
Kahn Singh, Guramat Sudbdkar
al.,
first
in 1915.
he most recent
WHO
5.
edition, extensively revised,
A SIKH?
published from the l.anguages Department,
1970.
l\injal), in Patiala in
Ciiiramat Prakds
24.
is
IS
Bbdg Sanskdr, published bv the Chief Khalsa
I3iv\
an,
.\mritsar, in 1915. 25.
up
set
he Shiromani (lurdvvara Parbandhak (Committee (the SGP(.') was
I
accordance with the 1925 Sikh Ciurdwaras Act, with which the
in
ended. See chapter
.\kali agitation effectively
SCiPC, see (iobinder Singh, Sikh
26.
Maryddd,
Rahit
and
Religion
n.26. For a study ot the
3,
Politics in the
Punjab.
Parbandhak
Shiromani (iurduara
Amritsar,
Kamiti, 1950, and numerous reprintings. Fmglish translations: Rehat Maryada:
Guide
.4
Way
Sikh
to the
(I>ondon; Sikh Cultural Centre,
trs.
Sikh
Way
1970).
of Life,
tr.
Neither of the translations is
is
aljit
Kaur and
it
completely accurate.
.A
to the
SCiPC^,
translation of
given in 7'SSS, pp. 79-86. Nine years earlier small
his
book
incorporates routine Khalsa injunctions within
its
orders for
ini-
and marriage.
tiation
The
27.
Guide
rahit-nama; as in the case of Gurarnat Prakds Bhdg
strictly speaking, a
Sanskdr,
A
Dharam Parchar (Committee,
had appeared Jogendra Singh, Sikh Ceremonies. 4
there
Indarjit Singh,
1971); Rehat .\Iaryada:
anon. (.Amritsar:
most oi Sikh Rahit Maryddd
is,
of Life, Kanv\
only example appears to be the addition of
a fifth
takhat in 1963,
which time Damdama Sahib \\ as added to the list (or acknowledged to belong to it). .A takhat is a gurdwara with special authority within the Panth.
at
See discussion
chapter
Sainapati, Sri
28. p. 24.
29.
in
See chapter
4.
Gur Sohhd,
5, n.6.
CSR-n,
secs. 54, 61, 80, 92,
145, 295, 360, etc.
ith
30 Srt
kes,).
it,
The two remaining
Gur
Sohhd, sec. \
,
st.
Ibid., p.
items are bdnJ (the scripture) 150
21.137, p. 22 and
st.
30.146, p. 24.
CSR-n, pp. 15, 18-19. Piara Singh Padam, comp., Rahit -ndme {PAGWei: author, 1974), vadi
5,
S.1752
= February
13,
1696.
also gives a date in S. 1752 as the time of facie
30.146,
but only three of the five begin w
s
and sddh sangat (the congregation).
Magh
st.
its
“k” {kachh, kirpdn,
32.
19.135, p. 22, and
st.
I'he Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndmd does not contain the grouping in
original text. .A later text allow
31.
V,
sec.
incongruous, for
time of
Guru Gobind
fact its date
it
its
I'he Prasan-uttar oi
composition. This
is
p. 56.
Lai
not prima
does not purport to ha\e been recorded near the
Singh’s death, nor does
it
refer to the Khalsa. If in
could be shown to be authentic the rahit-nama would assume
substantial importance as a testimony to a well-developed Rahit existing prior to the inauguration of the Khalsa in S.1756 (a.d. 1699).
130
5.
The
33.
According
HO
to
A SIKH?
IS
manuscript noted
earliest
hath-likhatdn di suchi, 34.
W
in
Shamsher Singh Ashok, Panjabi
S.1882 (a.d. 1825).
is
Jodh Singh there
is
reference to the hive
a
Prahilad Singh {Guramati niranay, Ludhiana: Lahaur 303).
It is
Piara Singh
36.
The
t\\
Padam,
p. 55.
TSSS,
o couplets reemerge
in
n.d., p.
Singh Padam version.
not, however, in the Piara
35.
Buk Shap,
Ks
p. 78.
and amended form
in a conflated
the nineteenth centurv. Gian Singh reproduced
them
as follows in his
late in
Panth
Prakds agia bhal akal kl tab! chalaio panth,
sabh sikhan ko
guru granth
jl
jan ka hirada
hukam
hai
guru manio garanth.
manio pragat guran
sudh
hai khoj sabad
ki dehi;
main
lehi.
bv Kapur Singh, Parasharprasna or the Baisakhi of Guru Gobind Singh, 24()n. I'his is the form in which they are recited immediately after the
(2ited p.
conclusion of Ardas or the Sikh Praver (ibid., pp. 449-50). Harbans Singh, Berkeley Lectures on Sikhism, p. 61. 37.
According to the Sikh Gurdwaras Act of 1925
a
Sikh
defined as
is
follows:
“Sikh” means
a
person
of a deceased person,
during his lifetime.
to be a Sikh
any to
who professes the who professed the
living person
be or to be not
If
Sikh religion or,
in the case
Sikh religion or was
any question
not a Sikh, he shall be
arises as to
deemed
known
whether
is
or
a
Sikh according as he makes or refuses to make
is
such manner as the Provincial Government
may
respectively in
prescribe the follow-
ing declaration:1
solemnlv affirm that
Sahib, that
I
I
am
a Sikh, that
1
believe in the
believe in the fen Gurus, and that
1
Guru
(iranth
have no other
re-
ligion.
.Most Sahaj-dharis
excluded by the phrase “and that
felt
religion,” believing themselves to be 38.
Gobinder Singh,
39.
Sikh Rahit
Religion
Maryada
and
Hindu
i
have no other
as well as Sikh.
Politics in the
Punjab, p. 80.
(see n.l), p. 27. I'SSS, p. 85.
The testimony
the Adi Granth to nasd (intoxication) arouses considerable controversy.
quotation such as the follou ing
duramati
ram
madu
is
a
case in point:
jo pTvate bikhalipati
rasaini jo rate
nanak sach amall.
131
kamalT;
of
5.
U7/0
('rhev
who
d'hev
Guru
consume the
v\’h()
liquor of evil are like a Shudra’s wife;
have drunk Ram’s draught are intoxicated with truth.)
Arjan, Asa 114, Adi Ciranth, p. 399. Texts of this kind can be con-
mean
strued to
either that they
comparing
are
A SIKH?
IS
(the truth of
Ram
smoking and the offense of
GNSR,
CSR-n,
meat
is
“Ram’s draught”
normally referred to as kuththd. Sikh
same sources
for the
ban on
hair-cutting.
The Singh Sabha
pp. 224-25.
did not invent the term. See
secs. 53, 54, 287. 6.
ESC, ch.
42.
Gurus
or Akal Furakh).
Rahit Maryddd, p. 26. TSSS, p. 85. See the
41.
as such, or that the
to the results of the infinitely superior
it
In Sikh sources haldl
40.
oppose drinking
Examples of caste-based conventions include the custom
5.
of having onlv the eldest son baptized as a Khalsa Sikh, the other children to
remain
as
Hindus. This
be found only
in families
and .\hluwalias, and
is
3.
ESC, pp. 60-62.
4.
Ibid., pp.
5.
Ibid., pp.
p.
A
Critical Study of
Adi Granth; ESC, ch.
4;
74-79. 70-73. EST, pp. 286-88. Charlotte Vaudev
Clarendon Press,
5,
Literature of the Sikhs
29-30.
TSSS,
pp.
normally to
7.
2.
lord:
is
thus confined to only a small minority of the Panth.
is
Surindar Singh Kohli,
EST, app.
It
belonging to the caste group of Khatris, Aroras,
The 1.
not a widespread custom.
1974), 1:58.
Schomer and McLeod,
ille,
Kabir {Ox-
eds.. The Sants,
337.
An
Introduction to the Sacred Language of the Sikhs, p.
6.
C. Shackle,
7.
C. Shackle, “The Sahaskriti Poetic Idiom in the Adi Granth," Bul-
letin
ii.
of the School of Oriental and African Studies (1978), 41(2):313. Professor
Shackle’s analysis covers a series of three
tw o are
“
‘South-
W estern’
(1977), 40(1): 36-50;
Elements
and “Approaches
BSOAS
articles.
The remaining
Language of the Adi Granth" Persian Loans in the Adi Granth"
in the
to
(1978), 41(0:73-96. 8.
See chapter
2.
For Sant Bhasa or Sadhukari see EST, pp. 49-51. The whole of the Granth is written in Gurmukhi, the script used for modern Punjabi.
9.
.\di
Gurmukhi, which
is
akin to Deva-nagari,
132
was evidently developed
as a traders’
THE LITER AT I RE OE THE SIKHS
6.
script within the Khatri caste to
all
belonged. 1 radition
Guru Angad. 1 his mav be correct to the he may have been the first Guru to apply it to the recording
regards that
which the Ciurus
it
an invention of
as
votional compositions. Because of ture, the
Gurmukhi
its
extent
of de-
close association with the sacred scrip-
script has acquired sacred connotations.
amalgam oi sahaskrt a- with samskrta-, in other words a ‘grandified speech’ which recalls Sanskrit w ithout attempting to identifv itself with most of its difficulties.” BSOAS (1978), 10.
Professor Shackle defines Sahaskriti as “an
41(2):31(). 1
1.
d his range of differing approaches
merous
is
extensivelv described, with nu-
bv Surjit Singh Hans, “Historical Analysis of Sikh 1500-1850” (Ph.D. dissertation. Guru Nanak Dev Uni-
illustrations,
literature, A. I).
versity, Amritsar, 12.
There
glish.
Of the
1980), chs.
1-5,
8.
no adequate translation of the Adi (iranth available
is
know n
three versions the best
is
Sahib, published in four volumes, .\rguablv,
English of
Manmohan
Gopal Singh,
is
Singh, Sri Guru Granth Sahib
no pretense
at
En-
Guru-Granth
however, the much inferior vols.,
(8
Shiromani Gurdwara Parbandhak Committee, 1962-69), cause there
Sri
in
is
more
Amritsar: useful be-
beautv to distract the reader, and the author’s
system of cross-referencing indiyidual words from the Adi Granth to the Punjabi and English translations
fails
in
forbidding one.
The
often helpful.
third translation,
posthumous effort (Patiala: Punjabi Uniyersity, the same way as Gopal Singh. The task is, howexer, a
Gurbachan Singh 1984-),
is
Talib’s
English
If
is
not the mother-tongue of the translator there
hope of success, and even if it is, there is not much more. The poetry of the .\di Ciranth depends upon its sound as well as on its meaning, a requisite which makes the work of a translator truly daunting. The best is
little
Khushwant Singh, notably in his Hymns of Guru Nanak (New Delhi: Orient Longmans, 1969) and his Jupji: The Sikh Prayer (Lr)ndon: Royal India, Pakistan, and Ceylon Society, n.d.). Khushwant Singh needs to be read with care, howeyer, for when there is a conflict between the Gurmukhi original and the English translation, the latter sometimes of the translators
w'ins. Selections trs.,
is
from
the Sacred Writings of the Sikhs,
(London: George Allen and Unwin, 1960),
but only for readers several decades ago.
Trilochan Singh
is
et ah,
generally satisfactory,
w hich went out of fashion Eranslations from the Adi Granth are also to be found
w ho
like a style
of writing
TSSS, pp. 38-55, 86-93, 96-103, 105-21. 13. Eor the earlier descriptions and discussions, see ESG, pp. 60-61 and 75-79.
in
133
THE LITERA TURE OE THE SIKHS
6.
Nirbhai Singh claims that photocopies
Ibid., p. 61.
14.
lection of the
I
I\mns of the
(ttiru (inuith" in
is,
these photocopies are of the original pothJs,
hich
of 400 years
ESCf
15.
/W/W?
Fhe work has yet
atjo.
hov\ ever,
may be
no guarantee that old but not those
to be done.
The Chiefs ami Eamilies of Slot e
p. 62. (i. L. Cdiopra, ed..
in the
(Lahore: Superintendent, (iovernment Printing, Punjab, 1940), 1:167.
made
Reports were
16.
“4 he Col-
The Journal of Sikh Studies (Feb-
riiarv-.\ugust 1981), 8(l-2):2(), n.34. Fhere v\
exist:
possible
w as
of litigation in 1946 and access
w
hile the
Commissioner of emerge from this time was Jodh
possible through the
Fhe principal report
JuIIimdiir Division.
manuscript was the subject
to
Singh’s Sri Karatdrpiiri hJr de darsdti (Patiala: Punjabi Uni\ ersity, 1968). Brief 17.
reports were also published
j. (>.
and Their Book (Lucknow
W esterner
Looks
:
Archer, “4 he Bible of the Sikhs,” The
H. Loehlin, The Sikhs Lucknow Publishing House, 1946), pp. 44 15,
(January 1949), pp.
Reviezi' of Religion
and
by
1
15-25; and
C^.
—
at
the Kartarpur (iranth,” Proceedings of the Punjab
History Conference (Patiala: Punjabi Lniversity, 1966), pp. 93-96. '
18.
ESC\ pp. 77-79. On the paramount importance of kirtan
Mansukhani, Indian 19.
Classical
Matyadd
Sikh Rahit
for Sikh v\’orship, see Ci. S.
Music and Sikh Kirtan, esp. ch.
(see chapter 5, n.26), pp.
10.
13-14, 18-22. TSSS,
pp. 81-82. 20.
Harbans Singh,
21.
Sikh Rahit Maryada, pp.
(slow' reading)
is
Berkeley Lectures on Sikhism, pp. 58-60.
14-15. TSSS, p. 80. 4'he term sahaj path
sometimes used
being that sddhdran (ordinary)
is
in preference to sddhdran path, the reason
held by
some
to
be
a
demeaning term.
22.
John .Malcolm,
23.
For further details see D. P. .\shta. The Poetry of the Dasarn Granth Delhi: .\run Prakashan, 1959); C. H. Loehlin, The Granth of Guru
(New
Gobind Singh and
the
Sketch of the Sikhs {Uon^Xow. 1812), p.
Khalsa Brotherhood,
pp.
20-56; and Gobind Singh
.Mansukhani, Aspects of Sikhism, pp. 105-13. .\lso TSSS, pp. and ESC, pp. 79-81. 25.
Khushwant Singh, A History of the Sikhs, 1:316. Khushwant Singh, pp. 314-17, holds this view
26.
For an exposition of
24.
a
173.
2,
6-7, 55-63;
.
version of this radical view (w ith particular
reference to the Savayye, Bachitar \dtak, and the Zafar-ndmd), see Surjit Singh
Hans, “Historical .Analysis of Sikh Literature,” pp. 364-91. 27.
Ibid., pp. 37 1-82.
28.
Fhe Nihang Sikhs, distinguished by their dark blue garments and
ILL
THE LITERA TI RE OE THE SIKHS
6.
impressive array of tur\’ traditions
Maiyada
30.
Nand 31.
I
ambivalence toward the he term gurhdm can cer-
and anv work attributed
it
identifies the
Sikh Rahit Maryddd, p.
It
Dasam
may
to Ciuru (lobind
nevertheless be signif-
(iranth separately.
I'SSS, p. 80.
13.
For Bhai Gurdas and Bhai
63-70.
Lai, see 'TSS\S\ pp. 2, 7-8, 31,
\
it.
certainlv be regarded as gurhdm.
no reference
icant that
reference to
all
tainlv be construed to include ill
32-33.
1
illustrates the general
(iranth bv omitting
Singh w
to keep alive the eighteenth-cen-
of the Panth. See TSSS, pp.
29. Sikh Rahit
Dasam
weapons, claim
steel
Singh, ed., Kabitt Bhai Gurdas, 3d ed. (Amritsar: Khalsa Sa-
ir
machar, 1966). 32. ritsar:
33.
Hazara Singh and \
ir
(Am-
Singh, eds.. Varan Bhdt Gurdas, 7th ed.
Khalsa Samachar, 1962).
Fhe translations
Ibid., 26:24.
chapter are
mv ow n
and, w
ith
for
all
of the passages quoted in this
the exception of note 44, are taken from
TSSS. 34.
Ibid., 36:14.
35.
Ibid., 26:15.
For further examples from the vdrs of Bhai (iurdas, see
TSSS, pp. 63-69. 36. (ianda Singh, ed., Kulliydt-i-Bhdi Sand Ldl Goya (Malakka: Sant
Sohan Singh, 37.
TSSS,
38.
For
1963). p. 69.
a brief
survev of the janam-sakhis, see ESG, ch.
tended treatment see ESI sakhi see 39.
For an Fnglish translation of
a
complete janam-
BLO J-s.
An example
Nanak’s
.
For an ex-
2.
visit to
of this kind
.Multan
w here
is
supplied by the story concerning Baba
a rose
is
been
said to have
water bv the earlier Sufi visitor ‘Abd al-(^adir
Jilani.
on
laid
GSSR,
p.
a
cup of For
142.
a
discussion of the janam-sakhi debt to the Sufi model see EST, pp. 70-73,
82-83. 40. 41.
I
he various traditions are described
For
a different
approach to the
life
in
of
EST,
Nanak
ch.
see
3.
GSSR,
ch. 4, esp.
pp. 146-47. 42.
Surjit
Singh
1
Ians, “Historical .\nalysis of Sikh literature,” pp. 348,
35 1-52, 505. Sulakhan Singh, “ (Ph.l). dissertation, (iuru
Fhe Ldasis Under Sikh Rule
Nanak Dev
(
1
750- 850)” 1
University, .\mritsar, 1985), p. 101.
Fhe exception
is
the .Miharhdn tradition. In the .Miharbdn Janani-sdkhI
each individuaf item
is
called a gost or “discourse” rather than a sdkhT or
43.
,
rUE Ln'ERATl'RE OE THE SIKHS “anecdote.”
I
he description
generally accurate for the bulk of the Mi-
is
harhan Jauam-sakht comprises discourses, vvith considerable space devoted to
and lengthy commentary.
scriptural cjuotation
44. B4() janam-sakhJ, folios 188b-19()a. .\ly translation a
more
literal
and
collections
corded as the
in A.
in
46.
I).
pp. 200-1.
Fhe anecdote appears
For
other
in
EST, pp. 124-27. The B4() Janam-sdkhJ, re733, draws from a variety of sources and can be regarded analyzed
is 1
J-s,
a free one.
in
most important of the extant janam-sakhis. Fhe janam-sakhis have been extensively used
45.
and
one see B4()
is
gurdwaras
for kathd
purposes
Hans, “d'he
Surjit S.
homes,
in
in schools,
(i.e.,
the delivery of religious homilies).
(itirbilas in
the Farlv Nineteenth Century,”
Journal of Regional History (1981), 2:51-53.
For examples, see TSSS, pp. 58-59, 62-63. 48. Hans, “Historical .Analysis of Sikh Literature,” pp. 37 1-72. 49. Ibid., pp. 429-30, 440 H. For a survey of the early gur-bilas 47.
—
lit-
Fransformation and the Oeative Imagi-
erature, see Surjit Hans, “Social
nation in Sikhism,” in Sudhir CTandra, ed.. Social Transformation and Cre-
(New
ative Imagination
50.
TSSS^.
5
Ibid., pp.
1
.
52.
Delhi: .Allied Publishers, 1984), pp. 99-106.
12.
12-13.
See chapter
3.
For further details concerning the literary aspects of
the Singh Sabha and examples of the
work
actually produced see TSSS, pp.
14-17, 133-47. Strictly speaking “Singh Sabha” should of course read “Tat Khalsa.” 53.
Harbans Singh, The Heritage of
Sikhs in the .Modern
7. 1.
1848-1968
dealing extensively
w
M. de Lepervanche, Doreen \\
.
W orld
Ilistoiy of the Sikhs, vol. 2, ch.
.VI.
them
are
Indians in a
.A.
Parminder Bhachu,
see
is
T. G. Kessinger,
.4
.
Helw eg,
Australia;
Sikhs in England;
Norman
Marie
Buchignani and
Social History of South Asians in
Can-
Tivice Migrants: East African Sikh Settlers in Britain;
H. .Meixod, Punjabis
'The Sikhs of Eiji
W
W hite
Indra, Continuous journey:
1-7,
Books concentrating on the Sikhs or
esp. pp. 89-94. ith
—
17.
Particularly useful for explaining Sikh migration
Vilayatpur
ada;
252-54.
For an account of the disorders and migrations of 1946
Khushwant Singh, A 2.
the Sikhs, pp. 226, 228,
in
Seiv Zealand; and a booklet by Gajraj Singh,
(Suva: South Pacific Social Sciences .Association, n.d. but
136
,
SIKHS IS THE
7.
1976 or 1977). As this titles
list
MODERN WORLD
indicates the subject
is
deserving notice are two books bv K. L.
and The
Eiji Indians; Kernail
Cambridge University
The United
cent book Lisefullv
Lumpur: Oxford University
an important gap. d his
fills
of Northern California
(New
Migrants
Malaya (Cambridge:
in
aw aits coverage of the entire
still
Other
and Sinnappah Arasaratnam, Indians
Press, 1969);
States
(iillion, Ei/iS Indian
Singh Sandhu, Indians
Malaysia and Singapore, rev. ed. (Kuala 1979).
attracting attention.
is
in
Press,
area, but a re-
Bruce LaBrack, The Sikhs
^ Ork: .\.\1S Press, 1987).
See also Emily Brow
n,
“Students, Sikhs, and Swamis: l^unjabis in the United States, 1899-1914,”
Harbans Singh and N. (L Barrier, eds., Punjab Past and Present, pp. 322-3 1; and Harold S. Jacoby, “Some Demographic and Social .\spects of Early East Indian Life in the United States,” in Mark juergensmever and N. Cierald Barrier, eds., Sikh Studies, pp. 159-71. A good overview of the
in
present situation
The Sikh Diaspora
1
3.
PNZ,
4.
Eor
is
provided bv N.
(New
Barrier and \
(i.
.
A. Dusenberv, eds..
Delhi: .Manohar, forthcoming).
p. 23.
izzat,
see Joyce
Pettigrew
,
58-59; and
Robber Noblemen, pp.
lelweg, pp. 11-33 pass. 5.
I
he three tahsils are Phillaur and Nawanshahr (Jullundur District),
and Garhshankar (Hoshiarpur 6.
District).
Doaba prominence in the area,
added
is
The
problem, see PNZ, pp. 19-30.
f or a discussion of the
eastern
evidently partially related to the falling water table
to the
diminished landholdings of the Doabi
Jats.
pp. 92-93.
7.
Kessinger, Vilayatpur 1848-1968
8.
.Marie de Lepervanche, Indians in a White Australia, pp. 12-14.
9.
PNZ,
pp. 34-35.
10.
Gillion, The Eiji Indians, pp. 116-17.
11.
Buchignani
and
Indra,
Continuous Journey,
Johnston, The Voyage of the Komagata Maru, 12. Buchignani and Indra, p. 7. 13.
p.
pp.
5-6,
14.
Hugh
139.
Ibid., p. 23.
Johnston, The Voyage of the Komagata Maru. 4 he Komagata .Maru w as Japanese vessel specially chartered to carry migrants direct from (Calcutta 14.
a
to \ ancouver,
passengers
who
thereby getting round the new’ policy. However, only the could prove their Canadian domicile were permitted to
ashore. In spite of vigorous protests, the rest
v\
ere prevented
and the ship was held under armed guard. 4'wo months to return across the Pacific. 15.
Buchignani and Indra,
p. 66.
137
later
come
from landing it
was forced
SIKfIS I\
7.
THE MODERS W ORLD
Ikucc LaBrack, “Occupational Specialization
16.
nia Sikhs,” Awerasia (1982), 9(2);4.>
—
1^6,
Among
Rural (Califor-
48.
17.
Parmindcr Bhachu, Tie ice Migrants,
18.
Manjit S. Sidhu, “Sikh Immigration to Kenya” (.\hmadu Bello Uni-
p. 21.
Department of (leographv Seminar paper, 1983), p. 4. ESC, pp. 102-3; and “.Miliiw alias and Ramgarhias: 4 wo Sikh Castes,” South Asia
versity,
(October 1974), no.
pp. 78-90.
4,
l^arminder Bhachu, pp. 13-14. Bhachu’s book
19.
is
concerned w
ith this
community.
Malcolm Darling, while traveling through Moga tahsil in 1931, encountered a Jat w ho had been in Sumatra and sex eral w ho had returned from (China; see his W isdom and Waste in the Punjab Village (London: Oxford University Press, 1934), pp. 104-6. .\t least tvxo found their w av to d onga. Sir
20.
PSZ,
l()3n.
p.
Roger Ballard and (Catherine Ballard, “4 he Sikhs:
21.
of South .\sian Settlements in Britain,” in James L.
I
he Development
W atson,
ed., Betieeen
Tivo Cultures: Migrants and Minorities in Britain (Oxford: Basil Blackwell, 1977), p. 28.
Rashmi Desai, Indian Immigrants in Britain (London: Oxford University Press, 1963), p. 19. Note that this does not include Pakistanis. 22.
Buchignani and Indra, Continuous Journey, pp. 128-30. Ibid., p. 109. Ballard and Ballard, “I he Sikhs,” p. 38. Parminder
23. 24.
Bhachu,
Tivice Migrants, p.
.>1.
4 he same incomprehension has also been w idely evident
25.
members
Dharma
of the Sikh
of the
W estern
Hemisphere
(the
among
W estern
young .\mericans, of the Sikh teacher Harbhajan Singh members typically find Punjabi values associated with izzat very
follow ers, mainly \
()gi).
Its
difficult to
understand or accept,
just as
to live
up
to strict doctrinal standards
\ erne
.\.
Dusenberv,
ica,”
forthcoming
Passions:
Sikh
Dharma
linnells.
p.
Owen Lynch
in
of the
strictly
on the part of many Punjabi Sikhs.
the .Moral Sensibilities of Sikhs in
Emotions and Eeeling
members, 1
“On
they often disapprove of a failure
in
North .\mer-
and Pauline Kolenda, eds.. Consuming
Indian Culture. 4 hose
W estern
w ho belong
Hemisphere are commonly known the movement’s educational branch. See
The Penguin Dictionary of Religions
(I
to the
as “3
HO”
john
R.
larmondsworth: Penguin, 1984),
303. 26.
For
a
survey of the remaining period, see
brief but very useful
(Christopher Shackle,
The Sikhs. 4 he account covers the entire period of
Sikh history, but deals
in rather
more
I
detail
.U
with the modern period.
SIKHS I\ THE
7.
MODERS WORLD
Paul \\ allace, “Religious and Secular Politics in the Punjab,” in
27.
W allace
and Surendra C^hopra, eds..
I^aul
Dynamics of Punjab, p. 5. 28. Patiala and the other princely states of the Punjab were amalgamated
to
form the
this
new
and w
A
Political
and Past Punjab States Union (PKPSU)
Patiala
were
state Sikhs
as accordingly
in a majority.
W ithin
proyed to be
politically unstable
state in 1956.
Khushwant Singh,
It
brought into Punjab
in 1948.
Histo/y of the Sikhs, 2:288.
Para Singh are scattered thickly through the works
References to
29.
w
dealing
ith
the Akali
moyement, both before and
after
independence. Por
brief biographical notes, see Pauja Singh, Eminent Ereedom Eighters of Punjab (Patiala: .4 kali
.
\
Punjabi Uniyersity, 1972), pp. 23 1-33; and Mohinder Singh, The
lovement, p
185.
.
31.
Joyce I^ettigrew, Robber Soblemen, pp. 63ff. Dalip Singh, Dynamics of Punjab Politics, pp. 76-77.
32.
The
30.
.\rya Samaj
strictly a political one.
bership. Por the Jan
was
a religious
d here
Sangh
and cultural body, the Jan Sangh
how eyer, an extensiye oyerlap in memthe Punjab, see Satya M. Rai, “The Strucas,
v\
in
ture of Regional Politics in the Punjab,” in Paul Wallace and Surendra
(diopra, eds., pp. 127-28. 33.
Khushwant Singh, A
Narang, Storm Over
the Sutlej:
History of the Sikhs,
Anup Chand Kapur,
Delhi: S.
Chand,
1985), pp.
The
2,
ch.
18;
A. S.
(New Delhi: Gitanjali, 1983), Punjab Crisis: An Analytical Study (New
The Akali
chs. 5-6;
yol.
Politics
149-79.
34.
Khushwant Singh, 2:299-300.
35.
I
36.
Panjab Uniyersity
larbans Singh, Berkeley Lectures on Sikhism, p. 62.
by Arya Samaj illuminating (yet
in
(Tandigarh
is
commonly
seen to be controlled
“Mahasha U niyersitw” Por an sympathetic) account of the working of Punjabi Uniyer-
interests
and
is
called the
Amrik Singh, Asking for Trouble (New Delhi: \ ikas, 1984). 37. Por a text of the Anandpur Sahib Resolution see Kuldip Nayar and Khushw ant Singh, Tragedy of Punjab, pp. 35-37. Seyeral yersions of the Anandpur Sahib Resolution exist. This represents the 1983 yersion.
sity, see
1
138-39; see also the
38.
Ibid., pp.
39.
Amrik Singh, “.\n Approach to Narang, “The Plectoral Angle,”
A. S.
which appears on pp. 140-41. the Problem,” and D. L. Sheth and
list
in
Amrik Singh,
ed., Punjab in In-
dian Politics, pp. 1-28 (esp. p. 9), 129-30.
“Sant,” see chapter 4, n.6.
40.
Por the
41.
Kuldip Nayar and Khushwant Singh,
title
Jacob, Amritsar, pp. 57-58.
139
p. 31.
Mark d
ully
and Satish
7.
42. “
I
Ibid., pp.
SIKfIS IX
58-59.
On
THE MODERX WORLD Mark Juergensmever, Schomer and McLeod,
the Sant Nirankaris, see
he Radhasoanii Revival of the Sant
I
radition,” in
eds.. The Sants, pp. 329-55.
43.
See above, chapter
3,
n.8.
Ainrik Singh and Pritam Singh in .\mrik Singh, ed., pp. 15, 178. must be admitted, hov\ever, that this was written in 1986 and that a
44. It
representative statement of Sikh opinion a
is
quite impossible to obtain. For
view of one possible outcome, see .\ndrew
J.
Major, “Sikh Ethno-Na-
tionalism, 1967-1984: Implications for the Congress,” South Asia (June,
cember
1985), 8(1-2): 176-78.
l-K)
De-
GLOSSARY
Adi Granth
the
Guru Granth
Sahib, the sacred scripture of the
Sikhs compiled by
AhluwalTa
a
Guru Arjan
in
Sikh caste of the Punjab, by origin
1603-04. distillers
but
successful in acquiring a greatly elevated status,
God.
Akal Purakh
“the Timeless Being,”
amrit (amrta)
“nectar of immortality”; baptismal water used in amrit sanskar (q.v.).
who has “taken amrit," i.e. member of the Khalsa (q.v.).
Amrit-dharl
a
amrit sanskar
the initiation
Anand
Sikh marriage
rite
Sikh
an initiated
ceremony of the Khalsa
(q.v.).
ritual.
Arora
a
Bala
one of the extant collections of janam-sakhi
mercantile caste of the Punjab.
anecdotes, notable for the presence of Bhai Bala as
ban!
Guru Nanak’s
regular companion,
works of the Gurus and other poets included
in the
Sikh sacred scriptures. of respect,
Bhai
“Brother,”
bhakta
devotee; one
bhakti
belief in, adoration of a personal god.
blr
volume, recension.
darsan
audience; appearance before eminent person, sacred
title
who
practices bhakti (q.v.)
object, etc.
Dasam Granth
the scripture
w hose authorship
Gobind Singh
is
attributed to (iuru
or his time,
dharma
dharam
the Punjabi version of
dharam-sala
place of worship for early Sikh Panth (later
gurdwara).
141
(q.v.).
,
(iimSARV dharnia
panthic duty.
Jig-vijava
concpicst of the world in
Fi\
e-Ks
five
items feach beginning with the
which (iranth
four directions,
all
initial
“k”)
Sikh of the Khalsa must wear.
a
[the SacredJ \'olume, the .\di (iranth (q.v.) or Ciuru
(iranth Sahib,
gurdwara.
grant hi
custodian of
gurbanl
vxorks of the (iurus.
gur-bilas
“Pleasure of the (iuru”; hagiographic narrative of
a
the lives of the (iurus (esp. the sixth and the tenth) stressing their role as
gurduara
gurdwara, Sikh temple,
(lurmat
the teachings of the (iurus.
(lursikh
a
guru
a spiritual
Sikh of the (iuru,
a loval
The
ten (iurus (and their dates) are
listed in the notes to
flesh of ritual
hatha-voga
Sikh,
preceptor, either a person or the divine
inner voice.
halal
w arriors,
animal killed
whereby
it
is
in
chapter
3,
n.l5.
accordance with the Muslim
bled to death
(cf.
jhatka).
the yogic discipline practiced bv adherents of the
Nath
(q.v.) tradition,
haumai
self-centered pride,
hukam
order.
izzat
honor, dignity, self-respect,
janam-sakhi
traditional narrative of the life of
Guru Nanak.
Punjabi rural caste, numerically dominant in the Panth. jhatka
flesh of
an animal
approved Khalsa kabitt
a poetic
kachh
a pair
for
killed
with
a single
blow
consumption by members of the
(cf. halal).
meter.
kahgha
w hich must not extend below the knee, worn as one of the Five Ks (q.v.). wooden comb, worn as one of the Five Ks (q.v.).
Kanphat yogi
“split-ear” yogi; follow er of
the
of pants,
Nath
Gorakhnath, adherent of
(q.v.) tradition,
worn
one of the Five Ks
kanl
steel bangle,
karah prasad
sacramental food prepared in {kardhJ).
142
as
a large iron
(q.v.).
dish
GLOSSAR] karam (karma)
the destiny or fate of an individual, generated in
accordance
\\
ith
the deeds performed in his/her
present and past existences,
katha
homily
kes
uncut
Kes-dharl
a
Khalsa
the religious order established
hair,
as
one of the Five Ks
Sikh w ho retains the
Singh
khande di pahul
worn
rite
in
(cpy.).
kes (q.v.).
by Guru (lobind
1699.
of sword-baptism as initiation to the Khalsa
(q.v.).
Khatrl
a
mercantile caste of the Punjab (cognate form of ksatriya, the
warrior varna^ q.v.).
kirtan
sword or dagger, worn singing of hymns.
laiigar
the kitchen attached to every
kirpan
food
is
served to
all,
as
one of the Five Ks
(q.v.).
gurdw ara from w hich
regardless of caste or creed;
the meal served from such a kitchen,
Mahala
a
code-word used to distinguish works by different (iurus in the Adi (iranth (q.v.). first
Ciuru,
is
Guru Nanak,
as
designated “Mahala 1” or simply
“Ml”; the second (iuru, Angad, “Mahala 2” or “M2”; etc.
is
designated
man
heart/mind/soul.
manji
administrative subdivision of the early Panth.
masand MazhabI
administrative deputy acting for the (iuru.
mlri-plri
doctrine
the Sikh section of the (ihuhra or sweeper caste,
w hich maintains
that the (iuru possesses
temporal {mlri) as well as spiritual
(/>/>/)
authority.
Mona nam
a
who cuts his/her hair, divine Name, a summary term
Sikh
the
total
nam nam
being of Akal Purakh
expressing the
(q.v.).
Name,
japan
devoutly repeating the divine
simaran
the devotional practice of meditating on the divine
Name
Nanak-panth
nam (q.v.). the community of Nanak’s followers; the early Sikh community; (later) members of the Sikh community who do not observe the discipline of or
the Khalsa (q.v.).
143
GLOSSA/^y
Nath
tradition
vogic tradition of considerable inlluence in the
Punjab prior
to
and during the time of the early
Sikh (iurus; practitioners of hatha-yoga
Nirahkar
[the
One]
(q.v.)
nirguna
“\\ ithout
Form,”
a
name
(q.v.).
of Akal Purakh
used bv Nanak.
“without qualities,” formless, not incarnated
(cf.
saguna).
nit-nein
the daily rule; set scriptural passages recited each
day.
Ks
pahj kakke/kakkar
the Five
pahj piarc
the “Cdierished Five”; the
(q.v.).
initiated as
Sikhs
in
members of
first five
Sikhs to be
the Khalsa in 1699; five
good standing chosen
to represent a
sangat (q.v.).
panth
“path” or “way,” system of religious belief or practice.
Panth
fhe word preferred usage
when
in
English as well as in Punjabi
referring to the Sikh
community
{panth spelled with a capital “P”). Pat it
an initiated Sikh w ho has committed one of the four gross sins (the char kurahit).
pir
the head of a Sufi (q.v.) order; a Sufi saint,
pothi
tome, volume.
Puratan
one of the extant collections of janarn-sakhi anecdotes.
who
qaum
“a people
Qur’an
the Koran,
raga
metrical mode,
ragi
hvmn-singer.
Rahit
the code of conduct of the Khalsa (q.v.).
rahit-nama
a
recorded version of the Rahit
RamgarhTa
a
Sikh artisan caste, predominantly drawn from the
stand together.”
(q.v.).
I'arkhan or carpenter caste but also including Sikhs from the blacksmith, mason and barber castes.
hymn
sabad (sabda)
Word;
sabha
society, association.
sadhan
means, method
saguna
“with qualities,” possessing form
a
of the .\di Ciranth (q.v.).
[of achieving spiritual liberation],
144
(cf.
nirguna).
GLOSSARY sahaj
the condition of ultimate, inexpressible beatitude;
the condition of ineffable bliss resulting from the practice of fidm simaratj (q.v.).
non-Khalsa Sikh.
Sahaj-dhari
a
Sanatan Sikhs
conservative
sahgat
congregation, group of devotees,
sansar
transmigration.
sant
one
members of
who knows
the Singh Sabha (q.v.).
the truth; a pious person; an
adherent of the Sant (q.v.) tradition,
Sant
one renowned
Sant Bhasa
the language of the Sant poets (also
as a teacher of
Ciurmat
(q.v.).
known
as
Sadhukan). sant-sipahl
one
who combines
pietv
v\
ith
the braverv of the
soldier.
Sant tradition
a
devotional tradition of north India
w hich
stressed
the need for interior religion as opposed to external observance.
Sarbat Khalsa
“the entire Khalsa”; representative assembly of the
Khalsa
(q.v.).
sat
truth.
satinam
Singh Sabha
“The Name is 1 ruth.” service, commonly to a gurdwara. reform movement initiated in 1873.
slok
shalok; a couplet or longer composition, normallv
seva
from
a
vdr (q.v.) in the Adi Granth
(q.v.).
Sufi
a follower of mvstical Islam,
tahsll
sub-district
takhat
“throne”; one of the five centers of temporal authority.
Tat Khalsa
“the true Khalsa”; the radical
Sabha
members
of the Singh
(q.v.).
w
tirath
place of pilgrimage
\'ahiguru
“Praise to the Guru”; the
\’aishnava
a
var
ode; a poetic form.
varna
the four ranks of the classical caste hierarchv.
ith
water.
w orshiper or devotee of
145
modern name
for
God.
\'isnu.
ir
";74 “ .
-
"
...
4
'''''
>
.
SELECT BIBLIOGRAPHY
A jit
Singh Sarhadi. Punjabi Suha: The Story of Kapur, 1970.
Amarjit Singh Sethi. Universal Sikhism. .\mrik Singh, ed. Punjab lAiblications,
in
New
the Struggle.
Delhi:
Delhi: L.
Hemkunt
(>.
Press, 1972.
Indian Politics: Issues and Trends. Delhi: .\janta
1985.
Avtar Singh. Ethics of the Sikhs. Patiala: Punjabi University, 1970. lialdev Raj Navar. .Minority Politics in the Punjab. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1966.
Raluant Singh Anand. (iuru Sanak: His
Nanak Foundation,
(jiiru
Guru Sanak: Banerjce,
.\.
Religion
to
N.
and
Ethics. Patiala:
Guru Gohind
The Khalsa Raj.
New
His Message.
New
Delhi:
Singh.
New
Punjabi University, 1968.
Patiala:
Punjabi University, 1971.
Delhi: Rajesh Publications, 1978.
Delhi: .\bhinav, 1985.
Cierald. The Sikhs
Periodicals,
W as
1983.
C. Guru Sanak and His Times.
Guru Sanak
Barrier,
and
Life
and Their
Literature: /\ Guide to Tracts, Books,
1849-1919. Delhi: .\lanohar, 1970.
Bhagat Singh. Sikh Polity
in the Eighteenth
and Sineteenth
Genturies.
New
Delhi:
Oriental Publishers, 1978. Brass, Paul R. Language, Religion, and Politics in Sorth India. (Cambridge:
(Cambridge University Press, 1974. Buchignani,
Norman and Doreen M.
Indra. Gontinuous Journey:
History of South Asians in Ganada. d'oronto: .McClelland (>)le,
W Ow en. .
The Guru in Sikhism. D)ndon: Darton,
A
Social
and Stewart, 1985.
Dmgman, and
I
cKld,
1982.
Sikhism and
Its
Indian Gontext
,
1469-1708. London: Darton, Longman,
and Fodd, 1984.
Ow’en and Piara Singh Sambhi. The Sikhs: Their and Practices. D)ndon: Routledge and Kegan Paul, 1978.
Cole, \\
.
147
Religious Beliefs
.
SlU.ECr BIHLIOGRAPUY
Dalip Singh. Dynamics of Punjab Daljeet Singh. Phe Sikh Ideology.
Sikhism:
Politics.
New
(Comparative Study of
.A
New
Delhi: Macmillan, 1981.
Delhi: Ciiiru
Nanak Foundation,
New
Theology and Mysticism.
Its
1984.
Delhi:
Sterling, 1979.
Darshan Singh. Indian Bhakti
and Sikh Gurus, (diandigarh: Panjab
Tradition
Publishers, 1968.
de Lepervanche, Marie M. Indians
Unwin,
a White Australia. Sydney: .\llen and
in
1984.
The Poetry of the Dasam Granth.
New
Duggal, K. S. The Sikh Gurus: Their Lives and Teachings.
New
Dharam
Ashta.
Pal
Arun
Delhi:
Prakashan, 1959. Delhi: \dkas,
1980.
Fauja Singh. Guru
Fauja Singh
Amur
Das: Life and Teachings.
et al. Sikhism.
Patiala:
New
Delhi: Sterling, 1979.
Punjabi University, 1969.
Fox, Richard G. Lions of the Punjab: Culture
in the
Making. Berkeley and Los
.\ngeles: University of California Press, 1985.
Ganda
A
Singh.
Gurdwara
Brief Account of the Sikhs. Amritsar: Shiromani
Parbandhak Committee, 1966. The Sikhs and Their Religion. Redw(X)d Citv:
Ganda Singh, ies
The
Sikh Foundation, 1974.
ed. Early European Accounts of the Sikhs. Calcutta: Indian Stud-
Past and Present, 1962.
(jillion,
K. L. The
Eiji Indians: Challenges to
European Dominance, 1920-1946.
Canberra: Australian National University Press, 1977. Eiji's
Indian
.Migrants:
A
History
to
the
End
of Indenture
1920.
in
Melbourne: Oxford University Press, 1962.
Gobind Singh Mansukhani.
Aspects of Sikhism.
New
Delhi: Punjabi
W riters
Cooperative Industrial Society, 1982.
Guru Ramdas: His
IBH,
Life,
Work, and Philosophy.
New
Oxford and
Delhi:
1979.
Indian Classical Music and Sikh Kirtan.
New
Delhi:
Oxford and IBH,
1982. Life of
Guru Nanak.
Gobinder Singh.
New
Religion
and
Delhi:
Guru Nanak Foundation,
Politics in the
Punjab. Nev\' Delhi:
1974.
Deep and
Deep, 1986^
Gokul Chand Narang. Transformation New Book Society of India, 1960. Gopal Singh.
A
of Sikhism. 5th ed. rev.
History of the Sikh People,
1469-1978
New
New’ Delhi:
Delhi:
World
Sikh University Press, 1979. The Religion of
the Sikhs.
Bombay: Asia Publishing House,
148
1971.
SELECT BIBLIOGRAEHY Gopal Singh,
Gur
4 vols. Delhi; tr.
Grewal,
Guru-Granth Sahib. English translation of the Adi (iranth,
Sri
tr.
Thus Spake
.\mritsar:
the
Tenth Master. Patiala: Punjabi University, 1978.
Xanak
Erotn Guru
S.
J.
Kapur, 1962.
I3as
Guru Nanak Dev
Guru Xanak
to
.Maharaja Ranjit Singh.
2d ed. rev.
University Press, 1982.
(Chandigarh: Panjab University, 1969.
in History.
The Sikhs of the Punjab. (Cambridge: (Cambridge University Press, forth-
coming. (jrev\'al,
J.
and
S.
S.
Bal.
S.
Guru Gobind Singh:
Biographical Study.
Chandigarh: Panjab University, 1978.
Gurbachan Singh Talib. Guru Xanak: His Das Kapur, 1969. (jurbachan Singh Talib,
tr.
Sri
Vision. Delhi:
Gur
Sahib. 2 vols. continuing.
En-
Personality
Guru Granth
and
glish translation of the .\di (iranth. Patiala: Punjabi University,
(iurmukh Nihal Singh,
ed.
Guru Xanak: His
Times,
Life,
and
1984-
.
Teachings. Delhi:
National Publishing House, 1969. 1
lakam Singh. Sikh
A
Classified Bibliography of Printed Books in English.
Punjab Publishing House, 1982.
Patiala; 1
Studies:
larbans Singh. Berkeley Lectures on Sikhism.
New
Delhi: (iuru
Nanak Eoun-
dation, 1983.
New
Bhai Vir Singh.
Guru Gobind
Delhi: Sahitva
New
Singh. 2d ed. rev.
Guru Xanak and
Akademi, 1972. Delhi; Sterling, 1979.
the Origins of the Sikh Eaith.
Bombay:
.\sia
Publishing
House, 1969.
Guru Tegh Bahadur. The Heritage of
New
Delhi: Sterling, 1982.
2d ed. rev.
the Sikhs.
Harbans Singh and N. (ierald in
Hari
Llonour of
Ram
Dr Ganda
Delhi:
.\.
.
the Sikhs.
1976.
New
3d ed. rev. 4 vols.
I'hree
Delhi;
more volumes forthcoming.
Sikhs in England: The Development of a .Migrant
Gxford University
Hershman,
Manohar, 1983.
Singh. Patiala; Punjabi University,
Gupta. History of
W
Delhi:
Barrier, eds. Punjab Past and Present: Essays
Munshiram Manoharlal, 1978-84. Helweg,
New
Community.
Press, 1979.
P. Punjabi Kinship
and .Marriage. Delhi: Hindustan Publishing
Corporation, 1981.
Indubhusan Banerjee. Evolution
of the Khalsa. 2 vols. (Calcutta: University
of (Calcutta and A. Mukherjec, 1936 and 1962 respectively, jagjit
Singh. Perspectives on Sikh Studies.
New
Delhi: (iuru
dation, 198). L'he
Sikh Revolution.
New
Delhi: Bahri, 1981.
149
Nanak Eoun-
SELECT BlliLIOCRAEin W bat's Happening
JetTrev, R.
to
India? London: Macmillan, 1986.
Joilh Singh. Ehe Religions Philosophy of (luru \anak: Special Reference to Siddha
(iosti.
(Comparative Study veitb
Varanasi: Motilal ILmarsidass, 1983.
Jogcndra Singh, comp. Sikh Ceremonies, l^ombav: International Book
1
louse,
1941.
Johnston,
I
The Voyage of the Komagata Maru:
lugh.
(Canada's (Colour liar. Delhi:
M. and N. (L
Jiiergensmever, spectives on a ries,
Oxford University
Changing
The Sikh (Challenge
to
Press, 1979.
Barrier, eds. Sikh Studies: (Comparative Per-
'Tradition.
Berkeley: Berkeley Religious Studies Se-
1979.
Kailash (diander (lulati. The Akalis Past and Present.
New
Delhi: Ashajanak,
1974.
Kapur Singh. Parasharprasna
An
Expo-
juWundur: Hind Publishers, 1959.
sition of Sikhism.
Vilyatpur 1848-1968: Social and Economic (Change in a
Kessinger, d'om (L
\orth Indian
or the Baisakhi of (Curu Cohind Singh:
Berkeley and Los .\ngeles: University of (California
Village.
Press, 1974.
Khushw ant
Singh.
versity Press,
.
\
History of the Sikhs. 2 vols. Princeton: Princeton Uni-
1963-1966.
Kuldip Navar and Khushw ant Singh. Tragedy of Punjab: Operation Bluestar and After. Nev\’ Delhi: \ ision Books, 1984. La Brack, Bruce. The Sikhs of Sorthern
California.
New
^4)rk:
A.MS
Press,
1987.
Loehlin, C. H. The Cranth of Curu Cobind Singh and the Khalsa Brotherhood.
Lucknow
Imcknow Publishing House, 1971. The Sikhs and Their Scriptures. Lucknow Lucknow Publishing House, :
:
1958.
Macauliffe,
Max
Arthur. The Sikh Religion:
Authors. 6 vols. in
McLeod,
\V.
3.
Curus, Sacred Writings, and
Its
Oxford: (Clarendon Press, 1909.
H. Early Sikh
Tradition:
A
Study of the Janam-sakhis
[/A'/’].
Oxford: (Clarendon Press, 1980. The Evolution of the Sikh (Community
[£'6’C].
New
Delhi:
Oxford Uni-
versity Press, 1975; Oxford: (Clarendon Press, 1976.
Curu \anak and Punjabis in Xeiv sity Press,
Who
Me
I
xod,
v\ith
is
\\
the Sikh Religion '/.ealand.
[C\SR]. Oxford: (Clarendon Press, 1968.
[PA'Z]. Amritsar: (lUru
Nanak Dev Univer-
1986.
a Sikh? Oxford: (Clarendon Press, forthcoming. .
H.,
tr.
The B4() Janam-sdkhi [B4()
j-s\.
An
Lnglish translation
introduction and annotation of India Office Library (iurmukhi
ISO
SELECT BIBLIOCRAPIIY a
1733. Amritsar: (iurii
Nanak Dev University
'The
Nanak compiled
janam-sakhi of (luru
manuscript Pauj.BLO,
Press.
in
A.i).
1980.
Dunedin: Universit)’ of Otago Press,
Chaupa Singh Rahit-ndma
1987.
.McLeod,
\\’.
H.,
and ed. Textual
tr.
Sources for the Study of Sikhism [LANS'].
.Manchester: .Manchester University Press, 1984.
Nanak
.Madanjit Kaur. L'he Golden Temple: Past and Present, .\mritsar: (iuru
De\ Universitv Press, 1983. .Manmohan Singh, tr. Sri Guru Granth
and Punjabi
Sahib. Knglish
tion of the .\di (iranth. 2d ed. 8 vols. .\mritsar:
transla-
Shiromani Gurdw ara
Parbandhak (A)mmittee, 1981-83. .Marenco, Kthne k.
'The 'Transformation of
Sikh Society. Portland: flaPi Press,
1974.
.Mohinder Singh.
'The
Akali .Movement. Delhi: .Macmillan, 1978.
Niharranjan Rav.
'The
Sikh Gurus and the Sikh Society:
ysis.
Patiala:
Study
in Social .Anal-
Punjabi Universitv, 1970.
OXionnell, )oseph T. Century.
A
I'oronto:
et al., eds., Sikh History
Ontre
Parminder Bhachu.
'Tvoice
for
South
and Religion
.\sian Studies,
in the 'Tzventieth
1988.
East African Sikh Settlers in Britain.
.Migrants:
London: I'avistock, 1985. lAtti^rew, Jovce. Robber Soblemen: Jats.
Rajiv
/\
Study of the Political System of the Sikh
Ivondon: Routledge and Kegan Paul, 1975.
Kapur. Sikh Separatism:
.\.
Unwin, Rax inder
'The Politics of Eaith.
London: .Mien and
1986.
(i. B.
Singh. Indian Philosophical Tradition and Guru \anak:
.4
Based on the Conceptual Terminology L'sed in Guru XanakS Bani.
Punjab Publishing House, 1983. Sahib Singh. Guru Xanak Dev and llis
'Teachings.
Study
Patiala:
Jullundur: Raj Publishers,
1969.
Satva .M. Rai. Punjab Since Partition. Delhi: Durga, 1986.
Schomer, Karine and
\\’.
H. McLeod,
eds. The Sants: Studies in a Devotional
Tradition of India. Berkeley: Berkeley Religious Studies Series, 1987; Delhi: .Motilal Banarsidass,
Shackle, C.
An
1987.
Introduction to the Sacred Language of the Sikhs.
D)ndon:
ScIkk)!
of Oriental and African Studies, 1983. 'The Sikhs.
Rev. ed. D)ndon: .Minority Rights (iroup, 1986.
Surindar Singh Kohli.
W riters’
A
Critical Study of Adi Granth. .
New
Delhi: Punjabi
Cooperative Industrial Society, 1961.
Surinder Singh johar. Handbook on Sikhism. Delhi: \ ivek, 1977.
151
.
SELECT HIBlJOCRAPI/y Singh Ciandhi. History of the Sikh Curus: (iiir Das Kapur, 1978.
Surjit
l
aran Singh, ed. Sikh
Ciiiriis
and
.
\
Comprehensive Study
Delhi:
Punjabi
the Indian Spiritual Thought. Patiala:
Lniversitv, 1981. d'eja Singh. I'he Curdveara Reform
Movement and
the Sikh Avsakening.
2d ed.
Amritsar: Shiromani (iurdvvara Parbandhak (Committee, 1984. Sikhism: Its Ideals and Institutions. Rev. ed.
Bombay: Orient Longmans,
1951. l
eja
Singh and (ianda Singh.
A
Short History of the Sikhs.
Bombay: Orient
Longmans, 1950. d riloehan Singh. Curti Tegh Bahadur: Prophet and Martyr. Delhi:
Gurdw ara
Parbandhak (Committee, 1967. Life of Cjuru
Hari Krishan. Delhi: Delhi Sikh (iurdw ara Management
(k)mmittee, 1981. I
rilochan Singh et
al.,
tr.
The Sacred Writings of the Sikhs. London: Allen
and Unwin, 1960. I
ully, .Mark
and Satish Jacob, Amritsar: .Mrs Gandhi's Last
Battle.
London:
l^m Books, 1985. Wall ace, Paul and Surendra (>hopra, eds. .\mritsar:
Guru Nanak Dev
Political
Dynamics of Punjab.
University Press, 1981.
152
INDEX
Abchalnagar,
‘Ahd al-Qadir Adi (iranth,
Nander
see
Jilani,
2, 4,
Afghans,
1,
125,
19, 20, 29, 57,
131,
132,
141;
based on predecessor, 27, 42, 87; dictated
by
46
Ahluwalia, Ahluw
135
60, 67, 69, 75-76, 78, 82-90,
92, 12
8,
(iiiru Arjan, 27,
alias,
132,
Akdl, timeless, 49 Akalis, Akali
movement,
12-13,
46, 68, 113-16, 130, 139
Akali Dal (Akali Party), 9-11, 56,
no, 113-16
42, 51, 57, 83, 84, 92, 126;
Akali state government, 116
history, 83-84; Islamic loan-
Akal Purakh, 2-3,
words, 27-29; language, 85-87;
141
6, 21, 29-31,
49-50, 52, 60, 61, 75, 141
ritual, 83, 88-89; structure,
Akal Takhat, 58
84-85; textual problems, 83, 84,
Akdl
87-88,
Akband path, unbroken reading, 89
1
34; translations,
133;
versions, 84
Lstat, 90, 91
Alakh, ineffable, 49
Adindth, Frim'al Nath, 25
Alcohol, 76, 77, 132
Adi Sdkhis janarn-sakhi tradition,
Amar
96
Das, third Guru, 27, 41,
42, 83, 87, 92, 126, 129
ISDHX Amin,
Idi,
Bhatra, Bhatras, 108
107
Amrit-dhari (Khalsa) Sikh, 79,
Bihar,
7, 78,
Brahman, Brahmans,
141
52, 53, 54,
24, 67, 74
Braj, 74, 85-86, 90, 92
A/urit siniskdr, Khalsa initiation,
Amritsar,
14
1
British, 8-9, 37, 46-47, 65, 80, 88,
141
Amritsar Singh Sahha,
96, 99, 107-8
116
112,
4, 8, 42, 83,
106, 107, 108
British (>)lumbia,
12
hvmn, 129
Anand marriage ceremonv,
(California,
67,
Anandpiir, 58
(Caste; 24, 26, 38, 39, 40, 56,
Anandpur Resolution
80-81, 109,
(1973), 114,
139
eastes,
Angad, seeond
(iiiru, 3, 41, 87,
1
126; rural
10,
104;
14,
14, 80,
urban eastes,
132
(Charnar, (Chamars, 104
133
Ardas, the Sikh Prayer, 74-75,
(Chandigarh, 13
Chdr kurahit, 78
131
Arjan,
107
(Canada, 106-7, 108.
89, 129, 141
126,
106,
tilth
(Charter of .\kali (irievanees
(iuru, 4, 27, 41, 42,
43, 51, 57, 83-87, 92, 102, 126
(1981), 114
Arora, Aroras, 112, 132, 141
(Chaupa Singh (Chhibbar, 65
Arva Samaj, 111, 139 Assam, 12, 19, 115
(China,
Aurangzel),
4, 38, 44,
(Chinese, 106
90
(Congress eentral government, 12,
Australia, 103, 105-6, 107
Avatar Singh \
ahiria,
14,
67
1,
115
(Congress Party, 10, 12, 110-11, 1
B4() Janam-sdkht, 2
18
97, 123, 124,
Damdarna,
135, 136
Babur, 42
Damdarna
Bachitar Sdtak, 90, 91, 98, 134
Dasam
Baghdad, 19
W ar,
Bdm, gurhdni,
58, bJr,
130
84
(iranth, 82, 83, 89-92, 94,
98, 121, 135, 141
Dava Singh,
Bdld janam-sakhi tradition, 96, 141
Bangladesh
138
105,
Delhi, 37^ 76
12
Desa Singh, 64-65
42, 45, 51, 130,
Deva-nagari seript, 132
135, 141
Dbaram
I3anno, 84
Banno reeension,
61, 66
84, 88
56,
{dharma), panthic duty,
141,
142
Beas River, 105
Dhararn-sala, 42, 57, 126, 141
Bhagats, 85, 86
Dbaram
154
ytuih, religious
war, 56
2
1
Dhir Mai, 84, 88 Diaspora Sikhs, 22, 76, 80-81,
(iuru (iranth, 40-41, 44, 57,
103-10, 119 I)it
62, 75; Khalsa initiation, 7, 44,
Singh, 100, 127
Divan of
Panth and
58, 61-62; (iuru
Nand
52, 71-72; life story, 65, 98-99,
Lai, 94-95
126,
Doaha, 105, 137 Dutch Last Indies, 105
130;
promulgated the
Rahit, 33, 45, 52-53, 62-66, 70; right to
draw the sword,
6-7,
38-39, 56, 117; works, 68, I'^arly
90-91, 98, 135
Sikh Tradition, 19, 20
Last Africa, 107
(ioindval, 42
Last African Railway, 107
(ioindval pothis, 27, 42, 83, 87,
134
Last Asia, 103, 105
Ldw ard
Lmcrgencv
(
(iolden 4'emple,
106
\’1I,
assault
1975-77), 113, 115
Lvil impulses,
11,
57-58;
3,
1
on complex:
58,
16,
1
118
3
The Tvolntion of the Sikh
Community, 40-41, 126
(iorakhnath, 25 (iranthi,
gurdwara custodian,
57-58, 142
(ireen Revolution, 9, 114 Lactionalism, 14, 109, 112-13
Lateh Singh, Liji,
1
(iuramat Sitdhakar, 68
1
Citir-bilds (^hhevin
105, 106, 107
Sohan, 99
Lire-ceremonv marriage, 67, 129
Gur-bilds Dasvin TatasdhJ of
Live Ks, 45, 53, 71-72, 74, 127, 130,
131,
TatasdhJ of
142
Singh, 98 (iur-l)ilas literature, 33-34, 73, 82,
Lundamentalism, 117
98-99, 100, 128, 136, 142 Gur-bilds TdtasdhJ 10 of
(iurdas Bhalla, 82, 83, 84, 88,
115, 118
(iandhi, Rajiv, 12-13 (iandhi, Sanjav, 115
(iarhshankar
tahsil,
(iiani tradition, Ciidn Prabodh,
92-94, 126, 135 (iiirdwara, Sikh temple, 42,
137
56-59, 74, 76, 79, 80, 81,
100
90
(iian Singh, 99
88-89, 92, 108-9, 128, 130, 142 (iiirdwaras, freedom of, 9, 46
(iurmat, 36, 48, 51, 86,
(iobind Singh, tenth (iuru, 4-5, 7,
34, 52, 55, 60, 61, 63, 74,
84, 94, 117;
Koer
Singh, 34, 99
(iandhi, Indira, 10-13, 15, 111, 113,
Sukha
founded the
Khalsa, 4-5, 38-39, 44-45, 52,
127,
16,
142
(iurmat (College,
(iurmukhi
1
1
script, 86,
(iiirmukh Singh, 127
155
1
132-33
125,
1
1
“1 ligh Priests,”
(inr Sohhii of Sainapati, 62, 72,
Hindi,
73-74, 98, 127, 128
(iuru
(ctt'rnal), 6,
Hindus,
3
(iuru (lol)ind Singh Department ot Keligious Studies,
111,
(iuru (iranth Sahib,
see
Hookah,
Adi
l)e\
105
103,
63, 72-73, 77
India, 9,
Nanak Foundation,
10,
Order, 30, 50, 142
command,
102, 115, 117
11,
Armv,
Indian
112
(lunl Siinak and the Sikh Religion,
103, 107,
Indian Constitution,
Indo-Pakistan
18-20, 27
War
(
1
118
116,
1
1965),
10,
HI
Interior devotion, 5-6, 24-25, 26,
(iuru Panth, 40-41, 44, 61, 62,
27, 42
69, 75
Islam, 86
(iiirus (ten), 3-4, 6, 34, 36, 39,
41, 51, 57, 60, 80-81, 86, 131,
119
Lniversity,
1-12
126,
14,
62
(iuru lineage, 23
(iuru
relations,
Hiikani-ndnids, letters of
Nanak
110,
104,
132
Ilukani, divine
iranth
1
131,
Hong Kong,
69, 75, 83, 88, 89-90, 131
102,
9, 36, 37,
Hindu-Sikh
112
(iuru (iranth, 40-41, 57, 61, 62,
1
tradition,
16-17, 24, 67, 86
(iuru (spiritual preceptor),
(iuru
12
10,
Hinduism, Hindu
30, 50, 51, 53;
57, 61, 64, 69, 75
(
57-58
1
16,
Izzat, honor,
133
(i yiin-ratandvalJ,
104,
109,
137,
138,
142
96 Jagjit Singh, 39
Ualdl meat, 72, 77, 132, 142
Janam-sakhis,
llarbans Singh, 17-18
Harbhajan Singh \
()gi,
2,
82, 95-98, 99,
138
19-22, 33,
18,
100,
1
larchand Singh Longowal, 12
Jan Sangh, HI, 139
1
largobind, sixth (iuru, 4, 38, 39,
janta government, 115
49
1
lari,
1
larijan (outcaste),
1
lari
1
larimandir,
1
lari
1
10-1
pp,
see
(iolden Femple
Rai, seventh (iuru, 44,
85
jarnail
Singh Bhindranw
12,
11,
112, 115-18
126
104, 107,
110, 112,
137,
142
1
38,
113,
126,
Jathd, militarv detachment, 56
142 lidavatullah,
14,
ale,
Jat, Jats, 9-10, 40, 43, 46, 72, 80,
Uatimai, self-eenteredness: 30, 50,
1
91
9i),
Jclpiijl,
Krishan, eighth (iuru, 44, 126
135,
142
136,
41, 43, 51, 84, 93, 98-99, 126
123,
M.,
18
Jhatkii meat, 72, 77,
156
142
1
IM)E\ Kab‘ah, 28
instrument of reform, 38-39,
Kabir, 23, 26, 29, 31, 51, 85
66;
Kabitt
poems, 92, 142
43, 98-99, 117; nation, 54-55,
68, 100
1
comb,
Kanphat
45, 142
Khalsa dharam-sastar, 67
Khande
142 25, 50-5
Khara
12,
Khushwant Singh,
84
uncut
hair,
1,
5,
130,
45, 72, 78,
Kirtan,
7,
53, 78, 79-80,
Khalistan (independent 13,
Khalsa,
5,
state),
45,
143
hymn
singing,
3,
30-31,
Koer Singh,
99
34,
Kuka
1-2,
Sikhs,
see
Namdhari Sikhs
118 6-10, 21, 36-37, 45, 46,
51, 52-56, 91, 94, 95, 98,
143;
1,
Komagata Maru, 107, 137
143
11,
32,
42, 50, 57, 89, 134, 143
125, 130, 143
Kes-dhari Sikh,
1
36, 39
Kirpdn, dagger or sword,
115
Kathd, homilv, 57, 136, 143 Kes,
84
village,
133, 143
Kartarpur, 84, 88
Kashmir,
pdhul, sword-baptism,
Khatri, Khatris, 43, 112,
Kartar, “Creator,” 49
bir,
dt
44, 62, 67, 143; see also Pahul
1,
143
Kartarpur
53-54,
61
Karah prasad, sanctified food, 57,
3,
125; ritual,
17,
synonymous with Panth,
vogis, 26, 142
(karam), 2,
1
69, 129, 130; sect, 54;
Kara^ bangle, 45, 142
Karma
draw the sword;
13; right to
6-7, 38-39, 56,
Kalki, 65 Kaiigha,
khdlis, 45, 52; militant
traditions, 5, 6-7, 8, 35-38, 40,
Kacbh, breeches, 45, 130, 142
Kahn Singh Nabha,
from
ban on hair-cutting,
63, 72, 77-80,
1
32;
126, 8, 45,
ban on
tobacco: 8, 63, 72-73, 77-78, 132; carrying a
Lahina, 41
Lahore, 37, 88, 102
Lahore Singh Sabha, 100, 127 Lai
Bahadur
Ldngar,
Shastri,
common
1
1
meal, 109, 126,
143
sword, 72;
codes of conduct, 33, 37, 40,
I^)ndon, 106
44, 45-46, 63-81, 130; definition
Lyallpur, 103
of a Khalsa Sikh, 60-61, 62-81; external identity, 36, 39, 44,
Macauliffe,
M.
A., 20, 34, 96,
100
45, 46-47, 53, 71-72, 79, 127;
founding, 38-39, 44, 61-62, 66,
Mahald, Ciuru’s sign, 125, 143
71, 128; initiation, 44, 52,
Malaysia, 105
53-54, 58, 60, 78, 130, 132;
Malwa
157
region, 74
I
IM)HX Man, heart/mind/spirit, 29-30 system 42
lan/i
.
,
Nanak, (luru,
143
,
2-3, 4, 5-6, 7,
16-31, 23, 32-33, 35, 37, 42,
Martial race, 8
53, 60, 61, 78, 79,
Martyr, 38-39, 42, 102, 116
founder of Sikh tradition,
Masafhi (Ciuru’s deputy),
Muslim accord,
44-45, 52, 143
112;
Hindu/
16-18, 19, 22-24, 31;
42,
5,
102,
21, 28; life
Mazhabi, 143
story, 18-23, 32, 95-97, 123,
Migration, 102-10, 136-37
126,
.
\
liharhdn Janam-sdkhi, 96
Mina .
\
Muslim inOuence on
works, 21, 27-29; reformer,
3 5-36
96
sect,
I in -pin,
1
,
135;
38-39; relationship to Sant
“tern p( )r a -s p r i
1
i
t
ua
tradition, 23-31, 32, 56;
1
authority,” 4, 43, 51-52, 56,
teachings, 18-19, 22-23, 27-31,
143
32,
36,%l-42, 49-51, 61, 71,
Mitkan (America), 105
86-87, 124; works, 19, 20-21,
Moksa, spiritual release, 24-25
27, 31, 32, 85, 12
Mona
Sikh,
Nanak-panth,
79-80, 143
7,
Montgomery,
51, 52, 97-98,
103
Morchd, “facing the enemy,” 56
Sdnak
Mughals,
Nander, 58
4, 7-8, 36, 37, 42-44,
Nand
46, 51
Mujeeb, M., 17-18
102,
143
Lai, 64-66, 74, 82, 92, ,
135
129,
Sand Ldl Rahit-ndmd,
Multani, 86
/ tradition,
10,
104,
110
Nehru, Jawaharlal, Sdni, diyine
Name,
50-51, 94,
1
Sam
Sam
23, 65,
3,
92, 134-35 74,
100
Sirankdr (name of Akal Purakh),
129
Name,”
29,
144
Nirankari Sikhs, 23, 127
“remembering the 30-3
1,
1
16,
Sirgnna, without qualities, 23, 26,
35, 36^ 41,
50-51, 53, 61, 63, 64, 71, 78, 79, 87, 97,
111
Zealand, 106, 107
Nihang Sikhs,
143
simaran,
Name,”
30-31,
10,
Delhi, 11, 12, 110
Niramala tradition,
japan, “repeating the
50, 71,
New New
143
16,
Namdey, 51, 85 Namdhari Sikhs,
3, 6,
123
Nath tradition, 25-27, 124, 144 Nawanshahr tahsil, 137
66-67, 72-73, 86,
8,
65-66, 129
Said, “intoxication,” 131-32
(1857-58), 103
Muslims,
17, 23, 24, 41,
Prakds, 74, 99
94-95
Multan, 135
Mutiny
4,
1
144 Sit-nem, daily rule, 79, 91, 144
North America,
143
158
103,
106-7, 108
,
Oregon, 106
Philippines, 105 Phillaur tahsil, 137
Pahul, initiation ritual,
Prachin Panth Prakds of Ratan
5
Singh Bhangu, 99, 126
Pakistan, 9, 102, 110
Prahilad Singh/Rai, 64, 74-75,
Panja Sahib, 102 University,
l^anjal)
Pafij kakke, Pafij mel,
1
panj kakar,
Spurned
128, 131
39 see Fix e
Ks
Prakin-uttar oi
Punjab, 9-14, 25, 29, 46, 85, 88, 95, 99, 102, 103-5, 110, 113-18,
Panth (the Sikh eommunity), 51,
Punjab Accord, 12-13
authority, 75-78, 114, 130;
founded bv Nanak, 22-23,
Punjabi language,
24,
1
38;
Punjabi Suba, 10-11, 110-12, 113
janam-
Punjabi University, 112-13, 139
19, 21, 95;
literature, 91, 92, 94, 98,
Puranas, 91
112;
meaning of the term, 54-55, 144;
membership,
107,
132; militancy, 36-46, 1
Piirdtan janam-sakhi tradition, 20, 21, 96, 123-4, 144
53, 56, 66,
17-18; place of
Oaiim, people
Adi
(iranth, 82, 83, 88, 89; politics, 11,
110,
113,
1
1
5;
10, 85-86, 88,
92, 100, 110-12, 133
31; history, 4-5, 6-7, 36-46, 52,
61, 67, 73, 103,
139
126,
80, 109, 112, 118-9, 127, 135;
56-57,
128,
Prithi (diand, 41
66, 76, 127
,
Lai, 64,
130
Five, 127
Pafij piare, (dierished Five, 58, 62,
sakhi view
Kmd
55,
synonymous
who
stand together,
144
Qur’an, 28, 144
w ith Akali Dal, 14; synonymous with Khalsa,
Radhasoami Satsang, Beas, 23
53-54, 61
Rdgt, hymn-singer, 57, 88, 144
1
Panth Prakds of (iian Singh, 99
Rahit, (Khalsa discipline), 5-6, 40, 41, 44, 45-46, 52-53, 62-81,
Partition (1947), 9, 10, 102-3,
108-10 Patiala,
Patiala
116, 119, 127, 144; authority,
75-80; development, 70-71, 75
112, 139
and Fast Punjab States
origins, 62-63, 70-73;
Rahit-namas (Rahit manuals),
Union, 139 Patit (“fallen”) Sikh, 78-80,
144
33,
45-46, 62-81, 82-83, 98, 128,
Chaupd Singh Rahit-ndmd,
Patna, 58
144;
Persian invasion, 46
65-61
Persian language, 94
namas, 63-65, 70, 73-75;
72, 74; early rahit-
r
Peshawar, 102
(liiraniat
159
Prakds Bhdg Sanskdr,
Sahaskriti, 86, 133
Rahit-nanias ((Continued) 68, 130; indi\idiial items,
Sainapati, 63, 98
71-73, 74, 77-78; nineteenth
Sanatan Sikhs, 67, 145
century rahit-namas, 65-66, 70;
Saiigat,
Preni Sunidrag (Pa rum Sumdrag),
65; Sau Sdkhi, 65,
57, 58, 62, 76-77, 88,
130;
145
Sansdr, transmigration, 50, 145
129; Sikb
Rahit Maryddd, 60, 69-70, 76, 77, 78-79,
congregation, 42, 45, 52,
Sant,
Singh Sabha
one w ho knows the truth,
55-56, 145
Sant, teacher of (iurmat, 56,
period, 66-69, 71
Rdj karegd khdlsd, 64, 74-75
115-17, 127, 145
Ram, 49
Sant Lhasa, 85-86, 132, 145
Ram
Sant Nirankaris, 116, 140
Das, fourth Ciuru, 41, 42,
87,
126,
Santokh Singh, 74, 99
127
Ramgarhia, Ramgarhias, 107, 144
Sant-sipdbi, sant-soldier, 55-56,
Randhir Singh, 62
116,
Ranjit Singh, Maharaja, 8, 10, 46,
117,
145
Sant tradition, 16-17, 23-31, 51,
54-55, 102
56, 85, 86, 87,
145;
124,
Ratan Singh Bhangu, 99, 126
interior deyotion, 24-25, 26, 27,
Ravidas (Raidas), 23, 85
42;
Muslim intluence, 27-29; Nath intluence, 25-27; social
Rawalpindi, 102
protest, 24, 26
Sabad
(sabdu),
W ord,
3,
Sarab Lob, All-Steel, 52
30, 50, 94,
Sarbat Kbdlsd, Entire Khalsa, 76,
144
Sabad Hazdre, 90
145
Sacred Language of the Sikhs, 85
Sas tar ndm-mdld, 90 Sati-ndm, True Name,
Sddban, spiritual release, 24-25,
Satiyuga, 65
Sacb kband, realm of 4 ruth, 51
144
Satliij
Sddbdran pdtb, ordinary readings, 89,
145
Riyer, 104
Satsang, congregation of true
134
belieyers, 56, 57
Sddb sangat, congregation of the faithful, 45, 56,
Savayye Amrit, 90, 91, 134
130
Sevd, seryice, 58-59, 145
Shackle, Christopher, 27-29, 85-86
Sadhukari, 86, 132 Sagiiua, with qualities, 26,
SabaJ, bliss, 26, 27, 51, 79,
Shaixite tradition, 25
144
Shastras, 28
124,
Shiyalik Hills, 90
145
Sahaj-dhari (non-Khalsa) Sikh, 7, 9,
30, 50,
36, 53, 67, 78-80,
SabaJ pdtby
1
131,
Shiromani Gurdwara Rarbandhak
5,
145
Committee (SCiPC), 68-69, 70, 76, 77,
34
160
1
9, 58, 10,
130
IM)H\ fasman Sea, 106
Shiva, 25
Siddhas, 25-26
Sikh
Dharma
4'at Khalsa, 67-68, 79,
of the
W estern
Tavarikh
Khalsa of (iian
Gtirti
Singh, 99
Hemisphere, 13S Sikh (jurdwaras Act, 1925,
9,
4'egh Bahadur, ninth Guru, 4,
130, 131
38, 44, 84, 85, 87,
126
feja Singh, 100
Sikh identities, 37
4
Sikhism, 16-18, 22 Sikhism: Its Ideals ami I list it iit ions,
105
elia (Australia),
fhailand, 105
longa, 138
100 Sikh Religion, The, of Macaiilifte, 34,
136, 145
I
Fransformation of Sikhism, 35-40,
1(X)
125
Singapore, 103, 105
Singh/Kaur,
orki (Indo-Fersian), 86
78-79
7,
Singh Sabha:
Fransmigration,
2
8-9, 20, 34, 37,
96
46-7, 82, 99-101, 127, 132, 136,
L'dasi sect,
145; historical interpretations,
United Kingdom, 107-8
35, 39, 96,
125; rahit-nama
interpretations, 66-68, 71, 79,
United States, 106, 107, 108
Urdu, 100
129 Sipdhi, soldier,
Smith,
W ilfred
116-17
Vdhigurii, 30, 49,
Cantwell, 16-17,
145
Vaishnava tradition, 24, 25, 27, 145 \ ancouver, 107, 108
41
121, 126, 135, 145
Sodhi family, 41
Vdrs, 92-94,
Sohan, 99
\'edic tradition, 100
Southeast Asia, 103, 105
\ ictoria.
Sri I.anka, 19
\
Sufi, Sufis, 95, 135,
ir
Queen, 106
Singh, 100
145
Sukha Singh, 98
W ashington
Sukhinaiu, 85
Western Hindi, 85-86
Sumatra, 138
Western historiography,
state,
106
33, 35,
40, 70, 100
Suraj Prakds, 74, 99
Woolgoolga, 106 Takhat, throne, 57-58, 130, 145
Tanakhah, penance, 65
Tanakhdh-naina of
Nand
106
I,
II,
105, 107, 108
Lai, 64,
74, 128
4 antric Buddhism, 25-26 fara Singh, 110-12, 139
World War World War
'Aafar-ndind, 90-91,
/ail Singh, 116 VAiidagi-ndind:
161
94
134
V
*
‘
i:
X
•t.
>
§
I
»
I'if
4
V V
'
1
I
(
I
I
sikhshistoryreliOOnncle sikhshistoP/reliOOmcle
m flap)
(Continued ft Of
Sikh culture is believed to have been settled and unchanging from the time of the Gurus onwards. The Sikhs, a major new work by a leading authority, reveals that this is a very misleading view. McLeod
sympathetically and in so doing he estabtreats a variety of questions
new
understanding for students of religion and for all those interested in current events in India. lishes
a
W. H. McLeod
is
Professor of History
University of Otago in Dunedin, Zealand. He has lived for over nine
at the
New
years in India and
is
a
world-renowned
scholar of Sikh studies.
Among
his
seven books on the subject are Guru Ndnak and the Sikh Religion, The Evolution of the Sikh Community, and Early Sikh Tradition, all published by the Clarendon Press in Oxford.
The American Council of Learned Soci-
South San
eties Lectures
on the History of Reli-
gions #14
Francisco Public Library
Charles
Jacket desi2T:
y
Printed in th
^S.A.
Hames
Advance praise The Sikhs
for
"'The Sikh tradition goes back five centuries. That is a short span compared with other major religious traditions, but still amply long enough for a variety of doctrinal interpretations
developed.
No
and institutional precedents to have historian in the Western world is better
equipped to trace these other than Hew McLeod, who does so in a commandingly authoritative way in this book. McLeod takes the reader through a number of issues that have been sharply disputed both within the Sikh community and by outsiders, constantly clarifying what is at stake among alternative accounts of the history of this increasingly important religion. A masterly survey."
— Willard G. Oxtoby
Professor of Religious Studies
University of Toronto
"Hew McLeod
is
the unchallenged expert in Sikhism.
This book is as wise as it is erudite, as insightful as it is thorough. It is a pleasure to read and it is certain to become the classic study of Sikhism." Wendy Doniger OTlaherty University of Chicago
—
COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY PRESS/NEW YORK
ISBN
D-BBl-Obfim-X